BMW

650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Car BMW - Free user manual and instructions

Find the device manual for free 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) BMW in PDF.

📄 303 pages English EN Download 💬 AI Question
Notice BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - page 3
Pick your language and provide your email: we'll send you a specifically translated version.

User questions about 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) BMW

0 question about this device. Answer the ones you know or ask your own.

Ask a new question about this device

The email remains private: it is only used to notify you if someone responds to your question.

No questions yet. Be the first to ask one.

Download the instructions for your Car in PDF format for free! Find your manual 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - BMW and take your electronic device back in hand. On this page are published all the documents necessary for the use of your device. 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) by BMW.

USER MANUAL 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) BMW

text_image Contents A-Z Owner's Manual for Vehicle BMW The Ultimate Driving Machine H. DJ 4008

THE BMW 6 SERIES COUPE.

OWNER'S MANUAL.

BMW EfficientDynamics

Less emissions. More driving pleasure.

Owner's Manual for Vehicle

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - OWNER'S MANUAL. - 1

The Ultimate Driving Machine

640i

Owner's Manual for Vehicle

650i

Thank you for choosing a BMW.

650i xDrive

The more familiar you are with your vehicle, the better control you will have on the road. We therefore strongly suggest:

Read this Owner's Manual before starting off in your new BMW. Also use the Integrated Owner's Manual in your vehicle. It contains important information on vehicle operation that will help you make full use of the technical features available in your BMW. The manual also contains information designed to enhance operating reliability and road safety, and to contribute to maintaining the value of your BMW.

Any updates made after the editorial deadline for the printed or integrated Owner's Manual are located in the appendix of the printed quick reference for the vehicle.

Supplementary information can be found in the additional brochures in the onboard literature.

We wish you a safe and enjoyable drive.

BMW AG

Reprinting, including excerpts, only with the written

consent of BMW AG, Munich.

US English VIII/11, 09 11 490

Printed on environmentally friendly paper, bleached

without chlorine, suitable for recycling.

Contents

The fastest way to find information on a particular topic or item is by using the index, refer to page 292.

6 Notes

At a glance

12 Cockpit
16 iDrive
22 Voice activation system
25 Integrated Owner's Manual in the vehicle

Controls

30 Opening and closing
45 Adjusting
54 Transporting children safely
57 Driving
69 Displays
81 Lamps
86 Safety
98 Driving stability control systems
106 Driving comfort
131 Climate control
136 Interior equipment
141 Storage compartments

Driving tips

146 Things to remember when driving
149 Loading
151 Saving fuel

158 Navigation

Entertainment

176 Tone
179 Radio
187 CD/multimedia

Communication

210 Telephone
222 Office
231 Contacts
233 ConnectedDrive

Mobility

242 Refueling
244 Fuel
245 Wheels and tires
255 Engine compartment
257 Engine oil
260 Maintenance
262 Replacing components
267 Breakdown assistance
273 Care

Reference

280 Technical data
283 Short commands of the voice activation system
292 Everything from A to Z

Notes

Using this Owner's Manual

The fastest way to find information on a particular topic is by using the index.

An initial overview of the vehicle is provided in the first chapter.

Updates made after the editorial deadline

Any updates made after the editorial deadline for the Owner's Manuals are located in the appendix of the printed quick reference for the vehicle.

Additional sources of information

Should you have any questions, your service center will be glad to advise you at any time. Information on BMW, e.g., on technology, is available on the Internet: bmwusa.com.

Symbols

A Indicates precautions that must be followed precisely in order to avoid the possibility of personal injury and serious damage to the vehicle.

Marks the end of a specific item of information.

"..." Identifies Control Display texts used to select individual functions.

»...« Verbal instructions to use with the voice activation system.

»...« Identifies the answers generated by the voice activation system.

Refers to measures that can be taken to help protect the environment.

Symbols on vehicle components

i Indicates that you should consult the relevant section of this Owner's Manual for information on a particular part or assembly.

Vehicle equipment

This Owner's Manual describes all models and all standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series. Therefore, in this Owner's Manual, equipment is also described and illustrated that is not available in your vehicle, e.g. because of the selected optional equipment or the country-specific variants.

This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

For options and equipment not described in this Owner's Manual, please refer to the Supplementary Owner's Manuals.

On right-hand drive vehicles, some controls are arranged differently than shown in the illustrations.

Status of the Owner's Manual

The manufacturer of your vehicle pursues a policy of constant development that is conceived to ensure that our vehicles continue to embody the highest quality and safety standards. In rare cases, therefore, the features described in this Owner's Manual may differ from those in your vehicle.

Updates made after the editorial deadline

Any updates made after the editorial deadline for the Owner's Manuals are located in the appendix of the printed quick reference for the vehicle.

For your own safety

Maintenance and repairs

Advanced technology, e.g., the use of modern materials and high-performance electronics, re-

quires suitable maintenance and repair methods.

Therefore, have this work performed only by a BMW center or a workshop that works according to BMW repair procedures with appropriately trained personnel.

If this work is not carried out properly, there is the danger of subsequent damage and related safety hazards.

Parts and Accessories

For your own safety, use genuine parts and accessories approved by BMW. When you purchase accessories tested and approved by BMW and Genuine BMW Parts, you simultaneously acquire the assurance that they have been thoroughly tested by BMW to ensure optimum performance when installed on your vehicle. BMW warrants these parts to be free from defects in material and workmanship. BMW will not accept any liability for damage resulting from installation of parts and accessories not approved by BMW. BMW cannot test every product made by other manufacturers to verify if it can be used on a BMW safely and without risk to either the vehicle, its operation, or its occupants. Genuine BMW Parts, BMW Accessories and other products approved by BMW, together with professional advice on using these items, are available from all BMW centers. Installation and operation of non-BMW approved accessories such as alarms, radios, amplifiers, radar detectors, wheels, suspension components, brake dust shields, telephones, including operation of any mobile phone from within the vehicle without using an externally mounted antenna, or transceiver equipment, for instance, CBs, walkie-talkies, ham radios or similar accessories, may cause extensive damage to the vehicle, compromise its safety, interfere with the vehicle's electrical system or affect the validity of the BMW Limited Warranty. See your BMW center for additional information. Maintenance, replacement, or repair of the emission control devices and systems may be performed by any automotive repair establishment or individual using any certified automotive part.

California Proposition 65 Warning

California laws require us to state the following warning:

Engine exhaust and a wide variety of automobile components and parts, including components found in the interior furnishings in a vehicle, contain or emit chemicals known to the State of California to cause cancer and birth defects and reproductive harm. In addition, certain fluids contained in vehicles and certain products of component wear contain or emit chemicals known to the State of California to cause cancer and birth defects or other reproductive harm. Battery posts, terminals and related accessories contain lead and lead compounds. Wash your hands after handling. Used engine oil contains chemicals that have caused cancer in laboratory animals. Always protect your skin by washing thoroughly with soap and water.

Service and warranty

We recommend that you read this publication thoroughly. Your vehicle is covered by the following warranties:

▶ New Vehicle Limited Warranty.
▶ Rust Perforation Limited Warranty.
▶ Federal Emissions System Defect Warranty.
▶ Federal Emissions Performance Warranty.
▶ California Emission Control System Limited Warranty.

Detailed information about these warranties is listed in the Service and Warranty Information Booklet for US models or in the Warranty and Service Guide Booklet for Canadian models.

Your vehicle has been specifically adapted and designed to meet the particular operating conditions and homologation requirements in your country and continental region in order to deliver the full driving pleasure while the vehicle is operated under those conditions. If you wish to operate your vehicle in another country or region,

you may be required to adapt your vehicle to meet different prevailing operating conditions and homologation requirements. You should also be aware of any applicable warranty limitations or exclusions for such country or region. In such case, please contact Customer Relations for further information.

Maintenance

Maintain the vehicle regularly to sustain the road safety, operational reliability and the New Vehicle Limited Warranty.

Specifications for required maintenance measures:

▶ BMW Maintenance system
▶ Service and Warranty Information Booklet for US models
▶ Warranty and Service Guide Booklet for Canadian models

If the vehicle is not maintained according to these specifications, this could result in serious damage to the vehicle. Such damage is not covered by the BMW New Vehicle Limited Warranty.

Reporting safety defects

For US customers

The following only applies to vehicles owned and operated in the US.

If you believe that your vehicle has a defect which could cause a crash or could cause injury or death, you should immediately inform the National Highway Traffic Safety Administration NHTSA, in addition to notifying BMW of North America, LLC, P.O. Box 1227, Westwood, New Jersey 07675-1227, Telephone 1-800-831-1117.

If NHTSA receives similar complaints, it may open an investigation, and if it finds that a safety defect exists in a group of vehicles, it may order a recall and remedy campaign.

However, NHTSA cannot become involved in individual problems between you, your dealer, or BMW of North America, LLC.

To contact NHTSA, you may call the Vehicle Safety Hotline toll-free at 1-888-327-4236 (TTY: 1-800-424-9153); go to http://www.safercar.gov; or write to: Administrator, NHTSA, 400 Seventh Street, SW., Washington, DC 20590. You can also obtain other information about motor vehicle safety from http://www.safercar.gov

For Canadian customers

Canadian customers who wish to report a safety-related defect to Transport Canada, Defect Investigations and Recalls, may telephone the toll-free hotline 1-800-333-0510. You can also obtain other information about motor vehicle safety from http://www.tc.gc.ca/roadsafety.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - For Canadian customers - 1

text_image Online Edition for Part no. 01 40 2 607 971 - 09 11 490

At a glance

These overviews of buttons, switches and displays are intended to familiarize you with your vehicle. You will also become quickly acquainted with the available control concepts and options.

Cockpit

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment

is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e. g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

All around the steering wheel
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 1

text_image 6 7 8 9 10 11 5 4 3 2 1 16 15 14 13 12

1 Roller sunblind 42
2 Power windows 41
3 Exterior mirror operation 51
4 Driver assistance systems

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 2

Active Blind Spot Detection 96

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 3

Collision warning 112

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 4

Lane departure warning 94

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 5

Night Vision with pedestrian detection 126

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 6

Head-up Display 129

5 Lamps
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 7

Front fog lamps 84

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 8

Parking lamps 81

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 9

Low beams 81

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 10

Automatic headlamp control 82

Daytime running lights 82

Adaptive light control 83

High-beam Assistant 83

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 11

Instrument lighting 84

6 Steering column stalk, left

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 12

Turn signal 63

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 13

High beams, head-lamp flasher 63

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 14

High-beam Assistant 83

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 15

Roadside parking lamps 82

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 16

Computer 76

7 Steering wheel buttons, left

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 17

Store speed 113, 106

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 18

Resume speed 115, 108

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 19

Cruise control on/off, interrupting 106

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 20

Increase distance 108

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 21

Reduce distance 108

8 Instrument cluster 69

9 Steering wheel buttons, right

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 22

Entertainment source

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 23

Volume

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 24

Voice activation 22

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 25

Telephone 210

10 Steering column stalk, right

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 26

Windshield wipers 64

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 27

Rain sensor 65

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 28

Clean the windshields and head-lamps 65

11 START/stop the engine and switch STOP ENGINE the ignition on/off 58

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 29

Automatic Engine Start/Stop Function 59

12 Horn

13 Steering wheel heating 53

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 30

14 Adjust the steering wheel 53

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 31

15 Unlocking the hood

16 Open the trunk lid 38

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 32

All around the center console

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - All around the center console - 1

text_image Diagram of a car interior with numbered labels pointing to various components such as dashboard, air intake, and control panel.

1 Headliner 15
2 Control Display 16
3 Glove compartment 141
4 Air vent 134
5 Hazard warning system 267

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - All around the center console - 2

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - All around the center console - 3

Central locking system 37

6 Radio 179

CD/multimedia 187

7 Automatic climate control 131
8 Controller with buttons 16
9 Parking brake 61

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - All around the center console - 4

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - All around the center console - 5

Automatic Hold 62

10 PDG Park Distance Control 115

Top View 120

Backup camera 118

Parking assistant 123

Side View 122

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - All around the center console - 6

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - All around the center console - 7

HDC Hill Descent Control 100

11 Driving Experience Switch 102

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - All around the center console - 8

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - All around the center console - 9

DSC Dynamic Stability Control 98

12 Transmission selector lever

All around the headliner

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - All around the headliner - 1

text_image 1 2 SOS 3 PASS AIR BAG OFF 4 5 4

1 Emergency Request 267

4 Reading lamps 85

2 Glass sunroof, powered 43

5 Interior lamps 85

3 Indicator lamp, front passenger airbag 88

iDrive

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

The concept

The iDrive combines the functions of a multitude of switches. Thus, these functions can be operated from a central location.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

Using the iDrive during a trip

To avoid becoming distracted and posing an unnecessary hazard to your vehicle's occupants and to other road users, never attempt to use the controls or enter information unless traffic and road conditions allow this.

Controls at a glance

Controls
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Controls at a glance - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard and steering wheel (no visible text or symbols)

1 Control Display

2 Controller with buttons

The buttons can be used to open the menus directly. The controller can be used to select menu items and create the settings.

Control Display

Notes

To clean the Control Display, follow the care instructions.
Do not place objects close to the Control Display; otherwise, the Control Display can be damaged.

Switching off

s the button.
2. "Switch off control display"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching off - 1

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching off - 2

text_image Options Split screen Switch off control display Profile settings Display Owner's Manual Reset current profile Rename current profile

Switching on

Press the controller again to switch the screen back on.

Controller

Select menu items and create settings.

  1. Turn.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Controller - 1

natural_image Diagram of a car dashboard with directional arrows indicating rotation or movement (no text or symbols)

2. Press.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Press. - 1

natural_image Close-up of a black mechanical component with a white arrow pointing to it, mounted on a circular base (no text or symbols visible)

3. Move in four directions.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Move in four directions. - 1

natural_image Close-up of a black knob with directional arrows indicating motion or movement around it (no text or symbols visible)

Buttons on controller

Press the button Function
MENU Open the main menu.
RADIO Opens the Radio menu.
CD Opens the CD/Multimedia menu.
NAV Opens the Navigation menu.
TEL Opens the Telephone menu.
BACK Displays the previous panel.
OPTION Opens the Options menu.

Operating concept

Opening the main menu

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the main menu - 1

Press the button.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the main menu - 2

text_image Main menu CD/Multimedia Radio Telephone Navigation Office ConnectedDrive Vehicle Info Settings

The main menu is displayed.

All iDrive functions can be called up via the main menu.

Selecting menu items

Menu items shown in white can be selected.

1. Turn the controller until the desired menu item is highlighted.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Turn the controller until the desired menu item is highlighted. - 1

text_image Main menu CD/Multimedia Radio Telephone Navigation Office ConnectedDrive Vehicle Info Settings

2. Press the controller.

In the Owner's Manual, menu items that can be selected are set in quotation marks, e.g., "Settings".

Changing between panels

After a menu item is selected, e.g., "Radio", a new panel is displayed. Panels can overlap.

▶ Move the controller to the left.

The current panel is closed and the previous panel is displayed.

The previous panel is opened again by pressing the BACK button. In this case, the current panel is not closed.

▶ Move the controller to the right.

A new panel is opened on top of the previous display.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing between panels - 1

text_image FM Manual CARIVARI ENERGY GONG96.3 KLASSIK 100.0 MHz 101.3 MHz

White arrows pointing to the left or right indicate that additional panels can be opened.

View of an opened menu

When a menu is opened, it generally opens with the panel that was last selected in that menu. To display the first panel of a menu:

▶ Move the controller to the left repeatedly until the first panel is displayed.
▶ Press the menu button on the controller twice.

Opening the Options menu

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the Options menu - 1

Press the button.

The "Options" menu is displayed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the Options menu - 2

text_image Options ✓ Split screen Switch off control display FM Display Owner's Manual ☐ HD Radio Reception ☐ RDS Radio

Additional options: move the controller to the right repeatedly until the "Options" menu is displayed.

Options menu

The "Options" menu consists of various areas:

▶ Screen settings, e.g., "Split screen".

This area remains unchanged.

▶ Control options for the selected main menu, e.g., for "Radio".
▶ If applicable, further operating options for the selected menu, e.g., "Store station".

Changing settings

  1. Select a field.
  2. Turn the controller until the desired setting is displayed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing settings - 1

text_image Volume settings Speed volume Volume setting: PDC Gong
  1. Press the controller.

Activating/deactivating the functions

Several menu items are preceded by a checkbox. It indicates whether the function is activated or deactivated. Selecting the menu item activates or deactivates the function.

The function is activated.
☐ The function is deactivated.

Example: setting the clock

Setting the clock

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the clock - 1

  1. Press the button. The main menu is displayed.
  2. Turn the controller until "Settings" is highlighted, and then press the controller.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the clock - 2

text_image Main menu CD/Multimedia Radio Telephone Navigation Office ConnectedDrive Vehicle Info Settings
  1. If necessary, move the controller to the left to display "Time/Date".
  2. Turn the controller until "Time/Date" is highlighted, and then press the controller.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the clock - 3

text_image Settings ✓ Time/Date Language/Units Tone Speed Climate Lighting Door locks
  1. Turn the controller until "Time:" is highlighted, and then press the controller.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the clock - 4

text_image Time/Date Time: 09:30 Format: 24 h Date: 27.05.2012 Format: tt.mm.jjjj
  1. Turn the controller to set the hours and press the controller.
  2. Turn the controller to set the minutes and press the controller.

Status information

Status field

The following information is displayed in the status field at the top right:

Time.
▶ Current entertainment source.
▶ Sound output, on/off.
▶ Wireless network reception strength.
▶ Telephone status.
▶ Traffic bulletin reception.

Status field symbols

The symbols are grouped as follows.

Radio symbols

Symbol Meaning

TI Traffic bulletins are switched on.
HD HD Radio™ is switched on.
Satellite radio is switched on.

Telephone symbols

Symbol Meaning

Incoming or outgoing call.
Missed call.
... Wireless network reception strength Symbol flashes: searching for network.
Wireless network is not available.
Bluetooth is switched on.

Symbol Meaning

▲ Roaming is active.
Text message was received.
Check the SIM card.
SIM card is blocked.
SIM card is missing.
Enter the PIN.

Entertainment symbols

Symbol Meaning

CD/DVD player.
Music collection.
gracenote Gracenote® database.
AUX-IN port.
USB audio interface.
Mobile phone audio interface.

Additional symbols

Symbol Meaning

Spoken instructions are switched off.

Request of the current vehicle position.

Split screen

General information

Additional information can be displayed on the right side of the split screen, e.g., information from the computer.

In the divided screen view, the so-called split screen, this information remains visible even when you change to another menu.

Switching the split screen on and off

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching the split screen on and off - 1

  1. Press the button.
  2. "Split screen"

Selecting the display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting the display - 1

  1. Press the button.
  2. "Split screen"
  3. Move the controller until the split screen is selected.
  4. Press the controller or select "Split screen content".
  5. Select the desired menu item.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting the display - 2

text_image Split screen content ✓ Split screen Map facing north Map direction of travel Map view with perspective Position ✓ Onboard info Trip computer

Programmable memory buttons

General information

The iDrive functions can be stored on the programmable memory buttons and called up directly, e.g., radio stations, navigation destinations, phone numbers and entry points into the menu.

The settings are stored for the remote control currently in use.

Saving a function

  1. Highlight the function via the iDrive.
  2. Press the desired button for more than 2 seconds.

Running a function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Running a function - 1

Press the button.

The function will run immediately. This means, for example, that the number is dialed when a phone number is selected.

Displaying the button assignment

Use a finger to touch the buttons. Do not wear gloves or use objects.

The key assignment is displayed at the top edge of the screen.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displaying the button assignment - 1

text_image CD/Multimedia Radio Telephone Navigation ConnectedDrive Vehicle Info Settings

To display short information: touch the button.
To display detailed information: touch the button for an extended period.

Deleting the button assignments

  1. Press buttons 1 and 8 simultaneously for approx. five seconds.
  2. "OK"

Entering letters and numbers

General information

  1. Turn the controller: select letters or numbers.
  2. Select additional letters or numbers if needed.
  3. "OK": confirm the entry.

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

Press the controller: delete the letter or number.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 2

Press the controller for an extended period: delete all letters or numbers.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 3

Enter a blank space.

Switching between letters and numbers

Depending on the menu, you can switch between entering letters and numbers:

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

Enter the letters.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 2

Enter the numbers.

Switching between upper and lower case letters

Depending on the menu, you can switch between entering upper and lower case letters:

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

above the controller up: switch from upper to lower case letters.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 2

ABGove the controller up: switch from lower to upper case letters.

Entry comparison

Entry of names and addresses: the selection is narrowed down every time a letter is entered and letters may be added automatically.

The entries are continuously compared to the data stored in the vehicle.

▶ Only those letters are offered during the entry for which data is available.
Destination search: town/city names can be entered using the spelling of language available on the Control Display.

Voice activation system

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

The concept

▶ Most functions that are displayed on the Control Display can be operated by spoken commands via the voice activation system. The system prompts you to make your entries.
▶ Functions that can only be used when the vehicle is stationary cannot be operated using the voice activation system.
The system uses a special microphone on the driver's side.
▷ ...« Verbal instructions in the Owner's Manual to use with the voice activation system.

Requirements

Via the Control Display, set a language that is also supported by the voice activation system so that the spoken commands can be identified. Set the language, refer to page 79.

Using voice activation

Activating the voice activation system

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating the voice activation system - 1

Press the button on the steering

  1. Wait for the signal.

  2. Say the command.

The command is displayed in the instrument cluster.

This symbol in the instrument cluster indicates that the voice activation system is active. If no other commands are available, operate the function in this case via iDrive.

Terminating the voice activation system

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Terminating the voice activation system - 1

Briefly press the button on the steering wheel or >Cancel.

Possible commands

Most menu items on the Control Display can be voiced as commands.

The available commands depend on which menu is currently displayed on the Control Display.

There are short commands for functions of the main menu.

Some list entries, e.g. Phone book entries, can also be selected via the voice activation system. Speak these list entries exactly as they are displayed in the respective list.

Having possible commands read aloud

You can have the available commands read out loud for you: »Voice commands«

For example, if the "Settings" menu is displayed, the commands for the settings are read out loud.

Executing functions using short commands

Functions on the main menu can be performed directly by means of short commands, nearly ir-

respective of which menu item is currently selected, e.g., >Vehicle status>.

List of short commands of the voice activation system, refer to page 283.

Help dialog for the voice activation system

Calling up help dialog: >Help

Additional commands for the help dialog:

▶ Help with examples: information about the current operating options and the most important commands for them are announced.
▶ Help with voice activation: information about the principle of operation for the voice activation system is announced.

Example: playing back a CD

  1. Switch on the Entertainment sound output if necessary.
  2. F: the button on the steering wheel.
  3. »C D and multimedia« The medium last played is played back.
  4. Press the button on the steering wheel.
  5. C D track ...< e.g., CD track 4.

Setting the voice dialog

You can set whether the system should use the standard dialog or a shorter version.

In the shorter variant of the voice dialog, the announcements from the system are issued in an abbreviated form.

On the Control Display:

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Language/Units"

  3. "Speech mode:"

  4. Select the setting.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the voice dialog - 1

text_image Speech mode ✓ Default Short

Adjusting the volume

Turn the volume button while giving an instruction until the desired volume is set.

The volume remains constant even if the volume of other audio sources is changed.
The volume is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Notes on Emergency Requests

Do not use the voice activation system to initiate an Emergency Request. In stressful situations, the voice and vocal pitch can change. This can unnecessarily delay the establishment of a telephone connection.

Instead, use the SOS button, refer to page 267, in the vicinity of the interior mirror.

Environmental conditions

▷ Say the commands, numbers, and letters smoothly and with normal volume, emphasis, and speed.
▶ Always say commands in the language of the voice activation system.
When selecting a radio station, use the common pronunciation of the station name:

Station ...< e. g. Classic Radio station

Keep the doors, windows, and glass sun-roof closed to prevent noise interference.
▶ Avoid making other noise in the vehicle while speaking.

Integrated Owner's Manual in the vehicle

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Integrated Owner's Manual in the vehicle

The integrated Owner's Manual can be displayed on the Control Display. The equipment and functions that are in the vehicle are described therein.

Components of the integrated Owner's Manual

The integrated Owner's Manual consists of three parts, which offer various levels of information or access possibilities.

Quick Reference Guide

Located in the Quick Reference is important information for the operation of the vehicle, the operation of basic vehicle functions or for what to do in the event of a flat tire. This information can also be displayed during driving.

Search by pictures

Information and descriptions based on illustrations can be searched via search by pictures. This is helpful, for example, if the description of an outfitting package that cannot be named is needed.

Owner's Manual

Information and descriptions can be searched by direct entry of a search term via the index.

Select components

  1. Press the button.

  2. Turn the controller: open "Vehicle Info".

  3. Press the controller.

  4. Selecting desired range:

▶ "Quick reference"
▷ "Search by pictures"
▶ "Owner's Manual"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Select components - 1

text_image Vehicle Info Quick reference Search by pictures ✓ Owner's Manual Onboard info Trip computer Vehicle status

Leafing through the Owner's Manual

Turn the controller until the next or previous page is displayed.

Leaf through the pages directly while skipping the links.

Highlight the symbol once. Now simply press the controller to leaf from page to page.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Page by page without link access - 1

Leaf back.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Page by page without link access - 2

Leaf forward.

Context help - Owner's Manual to the temporarily selected function

The relevant information can be opened directly.

Opening during operation via iDrive

To move directly from the application on the Control Display to the options menu:

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening during operation via iDrive - 1

  1. Press the button or move the controller to the right repeatedly until the "Options" menu is displayed.
  2. "Display Owner's Manual"

Opening when a Check Control message is displayed

Directly from the Check Control message on the Control Display:

"Display Owner's Manual"

Changing between a function and the Owner's Manual

To change from a function, e.g., radio, to the Owner's Manual on the Control Display and to switch between the two displays:

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing between a function and the Owner's Manual - 1

  1. ☐ Press the button or move the controller to the right repeatedly until the "Options" menu is displayed.

  2. "Display Owner's Manual"

  3. Select the desired page in the Owner's Manual.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing between a function and the Owner's Manual - 2

  1. Press the button again to return to the function displayed last.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing between a function and the Owner's Manual - 3

To switch back and forth repeatedly between the function displayed last and the page of the Owner's Manual displayed last, repeat steps 4 and 5. This opens a new panel every time.

Programmable memory buttons

General information

The Owner's Manual can be stored on the programmable memory buttons and called up directly.

Storing

  1. "Owner's Manual" Select via the iDrive.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storing - 1

  1. Press the desired button for more than 2 seconds.

Executing

Press the button.

The Owner's Manual is displayed immediately.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Executing - 1

text_image START STOP ENGINE Online Edition for Part no: 01 40 2 607 971 - 09 11 490

Controls

This chapter is intended to provide you with information that will give you complete control of your vehicle. All features and accessories that are useful for driving and your safety, comfort and convenience are described here.

Opening and closing

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Remote control/key

Buttons on the remote control
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Remote control/key - 1

text_image 1 2 3 4

1 Unlocking
2 Locking
3 Trunk lid
4 Panic mode, headlamp courtesy delay feature

General information

The vehicle is supplied with two remote controls with keys.

Every remote control contains a replaceable battery.

The settings called up and implemented when the vehicle is unlocked depend on which remote control is used to unlock the vehicle, Personal Profile, refer to page 31.

In addition, information about service requirements is stored in the remote control, Service data in the remote control, refer to page 260.

Integrated key
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

text_image Diagram showing a device component with numbered parts, likely illustrating a mechanical or electrical assembly.

Press the button on the back of the remote control, arrow 1, and pull out the key, arrow 2.

The integrated key fits the following locks:

Driver's door.
Storage compartment in the center armrest.

The storage compartment contains a switch for separately securing the tailgate, refer to page 38.

Replacing the battery
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 2

text_image Diagram of a car interior showing a hand holding a clip and a handle, with numbered arrows indicating parts of the clip.
  1. Take the integrated key out of the remote control.
  2. Push in the catch with the key, arrow 1.
  3. Remove the cover of the battery compartment; see arrow 2.

  4. Insert a battery of the same type with the positive side facing upwards.

  5. Press the cover closed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 3

Take the used battery to a recycling center or to your service center.

New remote controls

You can obtain new remote controls from your service center.

Loss of the remote controls

Lost remote controls can be blocked by your service center.

Emergency detection of remote control

It is possible to switch on the ignition or start the engine in situations such as the following:

▶ Interference of radio transmission to remote control by external sources.

▶ Discharged battery in the remote control.

A Check Control message is displayed if an attempt is made to switch on the ignition or start the engine.

Starting the engine in case of emergency detection of remote control

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting the engine in case of emergency detection of remote control - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing a black key inserted into the seat area (no text or symbols visible)

Automatic transmission: if a corresponding Check Control message appears, hold the remote control, as shown, against the marked area on the steering column and press the Start/Stop button within 10 seconds while pressing the brake.

Manual transmission: if a corresponding Check Control message appears, hold the remote control, as shown, against the marked area on the steering column and press the Start/Stop button within 10 seconds while pressing the clutch.

Personal Profile

The concept

Personal Profile concept

You can set several of your vehicle's functions to suit your personal needs and preferences.

The settings are automatically saved in the profile currently activated.
When the vehicle is unlocked, the profile that was last detected and called up with the remote control is used.
Your personal settings will be recognized and called up again even if the vehicle has been used in the meantime by someone else with another remote control.

The individual settings are stored for three Personal Profiles and one guest profile.

Transmitting the settings

Your personal settings can be taken with you to another vehicle equipped with the Personal Profile function. For more information, contact your service center.

Transmission takes place via:

The USB interface, refer to page 141, in the glove compartment onto a USB device.

Profile management

Opening the profiles

A different profile can be called up than the one associated with the remote control currently in use.

  1. "Settings"

2. "Profiles"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - "Profiles" - 1

text_image Settings Tone Speed Climate Lighting Door locks ✓ Profiles Allow rear control

3. Select a profile.

The profile that is opened is assigned to the remote control currently in use.

Renaming profiles

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Profiles"

The current profile is selected.

  1. "Options" Open.
  2. "Rename current profile"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Renaming profiles - 1

text_image Options Split screen Switch off control display Profile settings Display Owner's Manual Reset current profile Rename current profile Display user list at startup

Resetting profiles

The settings of the active profile are reset to their default values.

  1. Switch on the ignition.
  2. "Settings"
  3. "Profiles"

The current profile is selected.

  1. "Options" Open.
  2. "Reset current profile"

Importing profiles

Existing settings and contacts are overwritten with the imported profile.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Profiles"
  3. "Import profile"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Importing profiles - 1

text_image Profiles Import profile Export profile Guest
  1. USB interface, refer to page 141: "USB device"

Exporting profiles

Most settings of the active profile and the saved contacts can be exported.

This can be useful for storing and opening personal settings, e.g. if settings are accidentally changed or deleted.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Profiles"
  3. "Export profile"
  4. USB interface, refer to page 141: "USB device"

Using the guest profile

The guest profile can be used to make individual settings without affecting the three Personal Profiles.

This can be useful for drivers who are using the vehicle temporarily and do not have their own profile.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Profiles"
  3. The current profile is selected.

  4. Open "Guest".

  5. Create the settings.

Note: the guest profile cannot be renamed.

Display profile list during start

The profile list can be displayed during each start for selecting the desired profile.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Profiles"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Display user list at startup"

Personal Profile settings

The following functions and settings can be stored in a profile.

More information on the settings can be found under:

▶ Active Cruise Control: collision warning, refer to page 112.
▶ Exterior mirror position, refer to page 51.
▶ CD/Multimedia, refer to page 187: audio source listened to last.
▷ Dynamic Driving Control: sport program, refer to page 103.
▶ Driver's seat position, refer to page 35: automatic retrieval after unlocking.
Programmable memory buttons, refer to page 20: assignment.
▶ Head-up Display, refer to page 129: selection, brightness and position of the display.
▶ Headlamp courtesy delay feature, refer to page 82: time setting.
▶ Tone, refer to page 176: tone settings.
▶ Automatic climate control, refer to page 131: settings.
▶ Steering wheel position, refer to page 53.
▶ Navigation, refer to page 158: map views, route criteria, voice output on/off.

▶ Night Vision with pedestrian detection, refer to page 126: selection of functions and type of display.
Daytime running lights, refer to page 82: current setting.
▶ Park Distance Control PDC, refer to page 177: adjusting the signal tone volume.
▷ Radio, refer to page 179: stored stations, station listened to last, special settings.
▶ Backup camera, refer to page 118: selection of functions and type of display.
▶ Side View, refer to page 122: selection of the display type.
▷ Language on the Control Display, refer to page 79.
▶ Lane departure warning, refer to page 94: last setting, on/off.
Active Blind Spot Detection, refer to page 96: last setting, on/off.
▶ Triple turn signal activation, refer to page 63.
▶ Locking the vehicle, refer to page 37: after a brief period or after starting to drive.

Central locking system

The concept

The central locking system becomes active when the driver's door is closed.

The system simultaneously engages and releases the locks on the following:

▶ Doors.
Trunk lid.
▶ Fuel filler flap.

Operating from the outside

▶ Via the remote control.
▶ Via the driver's door lock.
▶ Via the door handles.
▶ Via the button in the trunk lid.

The following takes place simultaneously when locking/unlocking the vehicle via the remote control:

▶ Depending on how the vehicle is equipped, the theft protection is activated/deactivated. Theft protection prevents the doors from being unlocked using the lock buttons or the door opener.
The welcome lamps, interior lamps and courtesy lamps are switched on and off.
The alarm system, refer to page 40, is armed or disarmed.

Operating from the inside
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Operating from the outside - 1

natural_image Front view of a car air conditioner unit with no visible text or symbols on the panel itself

Via the button for the central locking system.

If the vehicle has been locked from inside, the fuel filler flap remains unlocked.

If an accident of a certain severity occurs, the central locking system unlocks automatically.

The hazard warning system and interior lamps come on.

Opening and closing: from the outside

Using the remote control

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Take the remote control with you

People or animals left unattended in a parked vehicle can lock the doors from the inside. Always take the remote control with you

when leaving the vehicle so that the vehicle can then be opened from the outside.

Unlocking

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Unlocking - 1

Press the button.

The vehicle is unlocked.

Welcome lamps, interior lamp and courtesy lamps are switched on.

You can set how the vehicle is to be unlocked.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Door locks"
  3. "Unlock button:"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Unlocking - 2

text_image Door locks Unlock button: All doors □ Last seat position auto. □ Lock if no door is opened □ Lock after start. to drive □ Acoustic sig. lock/unlock □ Flash when lock/unlock
  1. Select the desired function:

▶ "Driver's door only"
Only the driver's door and the fuel filler flap are unlocked. Pressing again un-locks the entire vehicle.
▶ "All doors"
The entire vehicle is unlocked.

Convenient opening

The remote control can be used to simultaneously open the windows and the glass sunroof.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Convenient opening - 1

Press and hold the button on the remote control.

The windows are opened, the glass sunroof is raised and the sliding visor moves back.

Releasing the button stops the motion.

Locking

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Locking - 1

Press the button on the remote control.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Locking - 2

Locking from the outside

Do not lock the vehicle from the outside if there are people in it, as the vehicle cannot be unlocked from inside without special knowledge.

Switching on interior lamps and courtesy lamps

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on interior lamps and courtesy lamps - 1

Press the button on the remote control with the vehicle locked.

Panic mode

You can trigger the alarm system if you find yourself in a dangerous situation.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Panic mode - 1

Press the button on the remote control for at least 3 seconds.

To switch off the alarm: press any button.

Switching on the headlamp courtesy delay feature

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on the headlamp courtesy delay feature - 1

Briefly press the button on the remote control.

The duration can be set in the Control Display.

Opening the trunk lid

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the trunk lid - 1

Press the button on the remote control for approx. 1 second.

The trunk lid opens, regardless of whether it was previously locked or unlocked.

During opening, the trunk lid pivots back and up. Ensure that adequate clearance is available before opening.

In some vehicle equipment variants, the trunk lid can only be opened using the remote control if the vehicle was unlocked first.

To avoid locking yourself out of the vehicle, do not place the remote control into the cargo area. The trunk lid is locked again as soon as it is pushed closed.

Confirmation signals from the vehicle

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Door locks"
  3. Deactivate or activate the desired confirmation signals.
    ▶ "Acoustic sig. lock/unlock"
    ▶ "Flash when lock/unlock"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Confirmation signals from the vehicle - 1

text_image Door locks Unlock button: All doors □ Last seat position auto. □ Lock if no door is opened □ Lock after start. to drive □ Acoustic sig. lock/unlock □ Flash when lock/unlock

Retrieving the seat, mirror, and steering wheel settings

The driver's seat, exterior mirror, and steering wheel positions selected last are stored for the currently used remote control.

When the vehicle is unlocked, these positions are automatically retrieved if this function was activated.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Retrieving the seat, mirror, and steering wheel settings - 1

Pinch hazard when moving back the seat If this function is used, first make sure that the footwell behind the driver's seat is empty. Otherwise, people can be injured or objects damaged when the seat is moved back.

The adjustment procedure is interrupted:

▶ When a seat position switch is pressed.
When a button of the seat, mirror, and steering wheel memory is pressed briefly.

Activating the setting

  1. "Settings"

  2. "Door locks"

  3. "Last seat position auto."

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating the setting - 1

text_image Door locks Unlock button: All doors Last seat position auto. Lock if no door is opened Lock after start. to drive Acoustic sig. lock/unlock Flash when lock/unlock

Malfunction

If the vehicle can no longer be locked or unlocked with the remote control, the battery may be discharged or there may be interference from external sources such as mobile phones, metal objects, overhead power lines, transmission towers, etc.

If this occurs, unlock or lock the vehicle at the door lock using the integrated key.

For US owners only

The transmitter and receiver units comply with part 15 of the FCC/Federal Communication Commission regulations. Operation is governed by the following:

FCC ID:

▷ LX8766S.
▷ LX8766E.
▷ LX8CAS.
▷ LX8CAS2.
MYTCAS4.

Compliance statement:

This device complies with part 15 of the FCC Rules. Operation is subject to the following two conditions:

This device may not cause harmful interference, and
- this device must accept any interference received, including interference that may cause undesired operation.

Any unauthorized modifications or changes to these devices could void the user's authority to operate this equipment.

Using the door lock

General information
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Using the door lock - 1

natural_image Close-up of a car door with a circular opening, showing no text or symbols

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Using the door lock - 2

Locking from the outside

Do not lock the vehicle from the outside if there are people in it, as the vehicle cannot be unlocked from inside without special knowledge.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Using the door lock - 3

Remove the key before pulling the door handle

Before pulling the outside door handle, remove the key to avoid damaging the paintwork and the key.

In some country-specific versions, the alarm system is triggered if the vehicle is unlocked via the door lock.

In order to terminate this alarm, unlock vehicle with the remote control, or switch on the ignition, if necessary, by emergency detection of the remote control.

In some vehicle equipment versions, only the driver's door can be unlocked or locked via the door lock.

Locking the doors and trunk lid at once

To lock all doors and the trunk lid at once:

  1. With the doors closed, lock the vehicle using the button for the central locking system in the interior.

  2. Unlock and open the driver's or front passenger door.

  3. Lock the vehicle.

- Lock the driver's door using the integrated key in the door lock, or

▶ Press down the lock button of the front passenger door and close the door from the outside.

The fuel filler flap can only be locked using the remote control.

Manual operation

If an electrical malfunction occurs, lock or unlock the vehicle using the integrated key via the door lock on the driver's door.

Opening and closing: from the inside

Locking and unlocking
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening and closing: from the inside - 1

natural_image Front view of a car air conditioner grille with a central logo (no text or symbols visible)

Pressing the buttons locks and unlocks the doors and the trunk lid when the doors are closed, but they are not secured against theft.

The fuel filler flap remains unlocked.

Unlocking and opening

Either unlock the doors together using the button for the central locking system and then pull the door handle above the armrest or

▶ Pull the door opener twice individually on each door: the first time unlocks the door, the second time opens it.

Automatic locking

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

  1. "Settings"

  2. "Door locks"

  3. Select the desired function:

"Lock if no door is opened" The vehicle locks automatically after a short period of time if a door is not opened.

"Lock after start. to drive" The vehicle locks automatically after you drive away.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic locking - 1

text_image Door locks Unlock button: All doors □ Last seat position auto. □ Lock if no door is opened □ Lock after start. to drive □ Acoustic sig. lock/unlock □ Flash when lock/unlock

Doors

Automatic Soft Closing

To close the doors, push lightly.

It is closed automatically.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic Soft Closing - 1

Danger of pinching

Make sure that the closing path of the doors is clear; otherwise, injuries may result.

Trunk lid

Opening

During opening, the trunk lid pivots back and up. Ensure that adequate clearance is available before opening.

Opening from the outside

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening from the outside - 1

natural_image Front view of a car's rear bumper with a white arrow pointing to the nose area (no text or symbols visible)

▶ Press on the top half of the BMW emblem. If the backup camera is activated, push the swiveled out BMW emblem further up to open the trunk lid.

▶ Press the button on the remote control for approx. 1 second.

Opening from the inside

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening from the inside - 1

Push the button in the driver's footwell.

If the vehicle is stationary, the trunk lid opens if it is not locked.

Closing

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Closing - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a modern electronic device casing with two recessed compartments and mounting points (no visible text or symbols)

Recessed grips in the interior trim of the trunk lid make it easier to pull down the lid.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Closing - 2

Danger of pinching

Make sure that the closing path of the trunk lid is clear; otherwise, injuries may result.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Closing - 3

Do not place the remote control in the cargo area

Take the remote control with you and do not leave it in the cargo area; otherwise, the remote control is locked inside the vehicle when the trunk lid is closed.

Locking the vehicle

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Locking the vehicle - 1

natural_image Black rectangular button with a white lock icon and an upward arrow, symbolizing access or security (no text or symbols present)

Press the button on the inside of the trunk lid. The vehicle is locked completely.

Locking separately

The trunk lid can be locked separately using the switch in the front center armrest.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Locking separately - 1

▶ Trunk lid secured, arrow 1.

- Trunk lid not secured, arrow 2.

Slide the switch into the arrow 1 position. This secures the trunk lid and disconnects it from the central locking system.

When the center armrest is locked, the tailgate cannot be accessed. This is beneficial when the vehicle is parked using valet service. The infrared remote control can be handed out without the key.

Emergency unlocking

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Emergency unlocking - 1

natural_image Close-up of a car front panel with a triangular warning symbol on the side (no text or labels visible)

Pull the handle inside the cargo area.

The trunk lid unlocks.

Comfort Access

The concept

The vehicle can be accessed without activating the remote control.

All you need to do is to have the remote control with you, e.g., in your jacket pocket.

The vehicle automatically detects the remote control when it is nearby or in the passenger compartment.

Comfort Access supports the following functions:

▶ Unlocking/locking of the vehicle.

▶ Convenient closing.

▶ Unlocking of the trunk lid separately.

Starting the engine.

Functional requirements

There are no external sources of interference nearby.

To lock the vehicle, the remote control must be located outside of the vehicle.

The next unlocking and locking cycle is not possible until after approx. 2 seconds.

The engine can only be started if the remote control is inside the vehicle.

Comparison with ordinary remote control

The functions can be controlled by pressing the buttons of the remote control or Comfort Access.

Unlocking

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Unlocking - 1

text_image Diagram showing a car interior with labeled parts 1 and 2, indicating directional movement or flow.

Fully grasp a door handle, arrow 1. This corresponds to pressing the button.

Locking

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Locking - 1

text_image Diagram showing a car door with labeled parts 1 and 2, indicating directional or flow direction.

Press the area on the door handle, arrow 2, with your finger for approx. 1 second.

This corresponds to pressing the 🎨 button.

To save battery power, ensure that the ignition and all electronic systems and/or power consumers are switched off before locking the vehicle.

Convenient closing

Press the area on the door handle, arrow 2, with the finger and hold it down.

In addition to locking, the windows and the glass sunroof are closed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Convenient closing - 1

Monitor the closing process

Monitor the closing process to ensure that no one becomes trapped.

Unlocking the trunk lid separately

Press on the top half of the BMW emblem on the trunk lid.

This corresponds to pressing the button.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Unlocking the trunk lid separately - 1

Do not place the remote control in the cargo area

Take the remote control with you and do not leave it in the cargo area; otherwise, the remote control is locked inside the vehicle when the trunk lid is closed.

Malfunction

Comfort Access may not function properly if it experiences interference from external sources such as mobile phones, metal objects, overhead power lines, transmission towers, etc.

In this case, open or close the vehicle using the buttons on the remote control or use the integrated key in the door lock.

To subsequently start the engine, hold the remote control against the marked area on the steering column, refer to page 31.

Alarm system

The concept

The vehicle alarm system responds to:

▶ Opening of a door, the hood or the trunk lid.
▶ Movements in the vehicle.
Changes in the vehicle tilt, e.g., during attempts to steal a wheel or when towing the car.
▶ Interruptions in battery voltage.

The alarm system briefly indicates tampering:

▶ By sounding an acoustic alarm.
▶ By switching on the hazard warning system.

By flashing the high beams.

Arming and disarming the alarm system

General information

When you lock or unlock the vehicle, either with the remote control, Comfort Access or at the door lock the alarm system is armed or disarmed at the same time.

Door lock and armed alarm system

Unlocking via the door lock will trigger the alarm on some country-specific versions.

In order to terminate this alarm, unlock vehicle with the remote control or switch on the ignition, if necessary, by emergency detection of the remote control.

Trunk lid and armed alarm system

The trunk lid can be opened using the remote control, even if the alarm system is armed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Trunk lid and armed alarm system - 1

Press the button on the remote control for approx. 1 second.

After the trunk lid is closed, it is locked and monitored again by the alarm system. The hazard warning system flashes once.

In some vehicle equipment variants, the trunk lid can only be opened using the remote control if the vehicle was unlocked first.

Panic mode

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Panic mode - 1

Press the button on the remote control for at least 3 seconds.

Switching off the alarm

▶ Unlock the vehicle using the remote control.
▶ With Comfort Access: if you are carrying the remote control with you, pull on the door handle.

Indicator lamp on the interior rearview mirror

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator lamp on the interior rearview mirror - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car rearview mirror with an arrow pointing to the nose (no text or symbols)

The indicator lamp flashes briefly every 2 seconds:

The system is armed.

The indicator lamp flashes after locking:

The doors, hood or trunk lid is not closed properly, but the rest of the vehicle is secured.

After 10 seconds, the indicator lamp flashes continuously. Interior motion sensor and tilt alarm sensor are not active.

The indicator lamp goes out after unlocking:

The vehicle has not been tampered with.

The indicator lamp flashes after unlocking until the engine is started, but no longer than approx. 5 minutes:

An alarm has been triggered.

Tilt alarm sensor

The tilt of the vehicle is monitored.

The alarm system responds in situations such as attempts to steal a wheel or when the car is towed.

Interior motion sensor

The windows and glass sunroof must be closed for the system to function properly.

Avoiding unintentional alarms

The tilt alarm sensor and interior motion sensor can be switched off together, such as in the following situations:

In automatic car washes.

In duplex garages.

During transport on car-carrying trains, at sea or on a trailer.

When animals are to remain in the vehicle.

Switching off the tilt alarm sensor and interior motion sensor

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching off the tilt alarm sensor and interior motion sensor - 1

Press the remote control button again within 10 seconds as soon as the vehicle is locked.

The indicator lamp lights up for approx. 2 seconds and then continues to flash.

The tilt alarm sensor and interior motion sensor are switched off until the vehicle is locked again.

Power windows

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Take the remote control with you

Take the remote control with you when leaving the vehicle so that children, for example, cannot operate the power windows and injure themselves.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 2

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard and steering wheel (no text or symbols visible)

Opening

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening - 1

▶ Is the switch to the resistance point.

The window opens while the switch is held.

▶ P-1 is the switch beyond the resistance point.

The window opens automatically.

Pressing again stops the motion.

Convenient opening, refer to page 34, via the remote control.

Closing

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Closing - 1

Danger of pinching

Monitor the closing process and make sure that the closing path of the window is clear; otherwise, injuries may result.

▶ The switch to the resistance point. The window closes while the switch is held.

▶ The switch beyond the resistance point.

The window closes automatically.

Pressing the switch stops the motion.

Convenient operation, refer to page 34, via the remote control.

Convenient closing, refer to page 39, with Comfort Access.

Pinch protection

If the closing force exceeds a specific value as a window closes, the closing action is interrupted.

The window reopens slightly.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pinch protection - 1

Danger of pinching even with pinch protection

Even with the pinch protection system, check that the window's closing path is clear; otherwise, the closing action may not stop in certain situations, e.g., if thin objects are present.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pinch protection - 2

No window accessories

Do not install any accessories in the range of movement of the windows; otherwise, the pinch protection system will be impaired.

Closing without the pinch protection system

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Closing without the pinch protection system - 1

Danger of pinching

Monitor the closing process and make sure that the closing path of the window is clear; otherwise, injuries may result.

For example, if there is an external danger or if ice on the windows prevents a window from closing normally, proceed as follows:

  1. Pull the switch past the resistance point and hold it there.

Pinch protection is limited and the window reopens slightly if the closing force exceeds a certain value.

  1. Pull the switch past the resistance point again within approx. 4 seconds and hold it there.

The window closes without pinch protection.

Roller sun blind

General information

If you are no longer able to move the roller sun-blind for the rear window after having activated it a number of times in a row, the system is blocked for a limited time to prevent overheating. Let the system cool.

The roller sunblind for the rear window cannot be moved at low interior temperatures.

Driver's door controls

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Driver's door controls - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard and steering wheel (no text or symbols visible)

Roller blind for rear window

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Roller blind for rear window - 1

Press the button.

Glass sunroof, powered with tilt function

General information

The glass sunroof is operational when the ignition is switched on.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Danger of pinching

Monitor the closing process and make sure that the closing path of the glass sunroof is clear; otherwise, injuries may result.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 2

Take the remote control with you

Take the remote control with you when leaving the vehicle so that children, for example, cannot operate the roof and injure themselves.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 3

text_image SOS MESSAGE AIR DAL OFF

Tilting up and closing glass sunroof

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tilting up and closing glass sunroof - 1

▶ Push switch upward briefly.

The closed roof is tilted and the sliding visor opens slightly.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tilting up and closing glass sunroof - 2

▶ Briefly press out the switch twice in succession toward the rear past the resistance point.

Closed roof is raised and the sliding visor moves all the way back.

To close the switch, press upward briefly or twice forward past the resistance point.

Convenient operation, refer to page 34, via the remote control.

Convenient closing, refer to page 39, with Comfort Access.

Opening/closing the sliding visor

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening/closing the sliding visor - 1

▶ Press the switch in the desired direction to the resistance point and hold it there. The sliding visor moves while the switch is being held.

▶ Press the switch in the desired direction past the resistance point.

The sliding visor moves automatically. Pressing the switch again stops the motion.

Pinch protection system

If the closing force exceeds a specific value as a glass sunroof closes, the closing action is interrupted.

The sunroof is raised again.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pinch protection system - 1

Danger of pinching even with pinch protection

Despite the pinch protection system, check that the roof's closing path is clear; otherwise, the closing action may not be interrupted in certain extreme situations, such as when thin objects are present.

Closing without the pinch protection system

If there is an external danger or if, e. g., icing of the glass sunroof prevents automatic closing, push the switch forward past the resistance point and hold it.

The roof closes without pinch protection.

Initializing after a power failure

After a power failure during the opening or closing process, the roof can only be operated to a limited extent.

Initializing the system

The system can be initialized when the vehicle is stationary and the engine is running.

During the initialization, the roof closes without pinch protection.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Initializing the system - 1

Danger of pinching

Monitor the closing process and make sure that the closing path of the glass sunroof is clear; otherwise, injuries may result.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Initializing the system - 2

Press the switch up and hold it until the initialization is complete:

▶ Initialization begins within 15 seconds and is completed when the sunroof and sliding visor are completely closed.

The roof closes without pinch protection.

Adjusting

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Sitting safely

The ideal seating position can make a vital contribution to relaxed, fatigue-free driving.

The seating position plays an important role in an accident in combination with:

▶ Safety belts, refer to page 48.
▶ Head restraints, refer to page 49.
Airbags, refer to page 86.

Seats

Adjusting

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Do not adjust the seat while driving

Do not adjust the driver's seat while driving, or the seat could respond with unexpected movement and the ensuing loss of vehicle control could lead to an accident.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 2

Do not incline the backrest too far to the rear

Also on the front passenger side, do not incline the backrest on the front passenger side too far to the rear during driving, or there is a risk of slipping under the safety belt in the event of an accident. This would eliminate the protection normally provided by the belt.

At a glance
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 3

text_image 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8

1 Active seat
2 Seat, mirror, and steering wheel memory
3 Backrest width
4 Lumbar support
5 Backrest, head restraint
6 Shoulder support
7 Forward/back, height, tilt
8 Thigh support

Note

The seat setting for the driver's seat is stored for the remote control currently in use. When the vehicle is unlocked via the remote control, the position is automatically retrieved if the Function, refer to page 35, for this is activated.

Adjustments in detail

  1. Forward/back.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjustments in detail - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with control panels and a directional arrow pointing to a device (no text or symbols visible)
  1. Height.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjustments in detail - 2

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with directional arrows indicating left and right movement (no text or symbols)
  1. Seat tilt.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjustments in detail - 3

natural_image Top-down view of a car dashboard with control panels and a directional arrow indicator (no text or symbols)
  1. Backrest tilt.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjustments in detail - 4

natural_image Top-down view of a car dashboard with control panels and a highlighted car (no text or symbols visible)

Thigh support

Multifunctional seat

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Multifunctional seat - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car air conditioning control panel with buttons and dials (no text or symbols visible)

Adjust the position using the lever.

Lumbar support

The curvature of the seat backrest can be adjusted in such a way that it supports the lumbar region of the spine. The lower back and the spine are supported for upright posture.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Lumbar support - 1

▶ Press the front/rear section of the switch.

The curvature is increased/decreased.

▷ Press the upper/lower section of the switch.

The curvature is shifted up/down.

Backrest width

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Backrest width - 1

Change the width of the backrest using the side wings to adjust the lateral support.

To make it easier to enter and exit the vehicle, the backrest width temporarily opens fully.

Shoulder support

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Shoulder support - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car's front panel with buttons and a white arrow pointing to a button (no text or symbols)

Also supports the back in the shoulder area:

▶ Results in a relaxed seating position.
▶ Reduces strain on the shoulder muscles.

Active seat

Active adjustment of the seat cushion's contours reduces muscular tension and fatigue to help prevent lower back pain.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Active seat - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with control panels and a star pointer (no text or symbols)

Press the button. The LED lights up.

Front seat heating

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Front seat heating - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with two rotary controls labeled 'AUTO' and 'MAX', showing function buttons and navigation icons (no readable text beyond labels)

Switching on

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on - 1

Press the button once for each temperature level.

The maximum temperature is reached when three LEDs are lit.

If the drive is continued within approx. 15 minutes, the seat heating is activated automatically with the temperature selected last.

Switching off

Press the button longer.

The LEDs go out.

The temperature may be reduced or seat heating may be switched off entirely to save battery power.

Temperature distribution

The heating action in the seat cushion and back-rest can be distributed in different ways.

  1. "Climate"
  2. "Seat heating distribution"
  3. Select the required seat.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Temperature distribution - 1

text_image Seat heating Driver Passenger
  1. Turn the controller to set the temperature distribution.

Active seat ventilation, front

The seat cushion and backrest surfaces are cooled by means of integrated fans.

The ventilation rapidly cools the seat, e. g., if the vehicle interior is overheated or for continuous cooling at high temperatures.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Active seat ventilation, front - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with two rotary controls labeled 'AUTO' and 'MAX', showing function buttons and navigation icons (no readable text beyond labels)

Switching on

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on - 1

Press the button once for each ventilation level.

The highest level is active when three LEDs are lit.

If when the seat ventilation is turned on the Maximum Cooling function is activated, the seat ventilation automatically switches to the highest level. When the Maximum Cooling function is switched off, the unit switches to the previously set level.

After a short time, the system automatically moves down one level in order to prevent excessive cooling.

Switching off

Press the button longer.

The LEDs go out.

Safety belts

Seats with safety belt

The vehicle has four seats, each of which is equipped with a safety belt.

Notes

Always make sure that safety belts are being worn by all occupants before driving away.

Although airbags enhance safety by providing added protection, they are not a substitute for safety belts.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 1

One person per safety belt

Never allow more than one person to wear a single safety belt. Never allow infants or small children to ride on a passenger's lap.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 2

Putting on the belt

Lay the belt, without twisting, snugly across the lap and shoulders, as close to the body as possible. Make sure that the belt lies low around the hips in the lap area and does not press on the abdomen. Otherwise, the belt can slip over the hips in the lap area in a frontal impact and injure the abdomen.

The safety belt must not lie across the neck, rub on sharp edges, be routed over solid or breakable objects, or be pinched.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 3

Reduction of restraining effect

Avoid wearing clothing that prevents the belt from fitting properly, and pull the shoulder belt periodically to readjust the tension across your lap; otherwise, the retention effect of the safety belt may be reduced.

Buckling the belt

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Buckling the belt - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the steering wheel and seatbelt (no text or symbols visible)

Make sure you hear the latch plate engage in the belt buckle.

Unbuckling the belt

  1. Hold the belt firmly.
  2. Press the red button in the belt buckle.
  3. Guide the belt back into its reel.

Safety belt reminder for the driver's and front passenger seat

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Safety belt reminder for the driver's and front passenger seat - 1

The indicator lamp flashes or lights up and a signal sounds. Make sure that the safety belts are positioned correctly.

The safety belt reminder is active at speeds above approx. 5 mph/8 km/h. It can also be activated if objects are placed on the front passenger seat.

Damage to safety belts

In the case of strain caused by accidents or damage:

Have the safety belts, including the safety belt tensioners, replaced and have the belt anchors checked.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Damage to safety belts - 1

Checking and replacing safety belts

Have the work performed only by your service center; otherwise, it cannot be ensured that this safety feature will function properly.

Front head restraints

Correctly adjusted head restraint

A correctly adjusted head restraint reduces the risk of injury to cervical vertebrae in the event of an accident.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Correctly adjusted head restraint - 1

Adjusting the head restraint

Correctly adjust the head restraints of all occupied seats; otherwise, there is an increased risk of injury in an accident.

Height

Adjust the head restraint so that its center is approximately at ear level.

Distance

Adjust the distance so that the head restraint is as close as possible to the back of the head.

Active head restraint

In the event of a rear-end collision with a certain severity, the active head restraint automatically reduces the distance from the head.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Active head restraint - 1

Reduced protective function

Do not use seat or head restraint covers.

Do not hang objects, e.g., clothes hangers, on the head restraints.

▶ Only attach accessories approved by BMW to the seat or head restraint.

Otherwise, the protective function of the active head restraint will be impaired and the personal safety of the occupants will be endangered.

Adjusting the height

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjusting the height - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car dashboard with directional arrows indicating left and right movement (no text or symbols)

Adjusting electrically.

Distance to the back of the head

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Distance to the back of the head - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the rear seat, neck, and side panel with a belt buckle (no text or symbols visible)

Forward: pull.

▶ Back: press the button and push the head restraint toward the rear.

Adjusting the side extensions

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjusting the side extensions - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing a black seat with white directional arrows indicating left and right sides (no text or symbols)

Fold forward for increased lateral support in the resting position.

Removing

The head restraints cannot be removed.

Entering the rear

Note

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Note - 1

Folding back and locking the backrest

Before driving away, fold back and lock the

backrests; otherwise, an unexpected seat movement may cause an accident.

Unlocking the backrest

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Unlocking the backrest - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the backrest door and seat, with no visible text or symbols.
  1. Pull lever up to the stop.
  2. Fold backrest forward.

Changing the seat position

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing the seat position - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the seatbelt and dashboard (no text or symbols visible)

To change the entry area:

▶ Press and hold the button until the seat has moved to the desired position. Releasing the button stops the motion.
▶ Press the button briefly. The seat automatically moves to the respective end position. Pressing again stops the motion.

Folding back and locking the backrest

After entering the rear, fold the backrest back and lock it.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Folding back and locking the backrest - 1

Press the button. The seat moves to its original position. Pressing again stops the on.

Seat, mirror, and steering wheel memory

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with control buttons and buttons (no text or symbols visible)

Two different driver's seat, exterior mirror, and steering wheel positions can be stored and retrieved for each remote control. The adjustment of the lumbar support is not stored.

Storing

  1. Switch on the ignition.
  2. Set the desired position.

  3. Press the button. The LED in the button lights up.

  4. Press the desired button 1 or 2. The LED goes out.

If the M button is pressed accidentally:

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storing - 1

Press the button again.

The LED goes out.

Calling up settings

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Calling up settings - 1

Do not retrieve the memory while driving

Do not retrieve the memory setting while driving, as an unexpected movement of the seat or steering wheel could result in an accident.

Comfort function

  1. Open the driver's door.
  2. Switch off the ignition.
  3. Briefly press the desired button 1 or 2.

The corresponding seat position is performed automatically.

The procedure stops when a switch for adjusting the seat or one of the buttons is pressed.

Safety mode

  1. Close the driver's door or switch on the ignition.
  2. Press and hold the desired button 1 or 2 until the adjustment procedure is completed.

Calling up of a seat position deactivated

After a brief period, the calling up of stored seat positions is deactivated to save battery power.

To reactivate calling up of a seat position:

▶ Open or close the door or trunk lid.
▶ Press a button on the remote control.

▶ Press the Start/Stop button.

Mirrors

Exterior mirrors

At a glance
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Exterior mirrors - 1

text_image Diagram of a car interior control panel with labeled buttons and a central knob

1 Adjusting
2 Left/right, Automatic Curb Monitor
3 Fold in and out

General information

The mirror on the passenger side is more curved than the driver's side mirror.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Estimating distances correctly

Objects reflected in the mirror are closer than they appear. Do not estimate the distance to the traffic behind you based on what you see in the mirror, as this will increase your risk of an accident.

Depending on how the vehicle is equipped, the mirror setting is stored for the remote control in use. When the vehicle is unlocked via the remote control, the position is automatically retrieved if the setting for this function is active.

Selecting a mirror

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting a mirror - 1

To change over to the other mirror:

Slide the mirror changeover switch.

Adjusting electrically

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjusting electrically - 1

The setting corresponds to the direction in which the button is pressed.

Storing positions

Seat, mirror, and steering wheel memory, refer to page 50.

Adjusting manually

If an electrical malfunction occurs, for example, press the edges of the mirror glass.

Automatic Curb Monitor

When the reverse gear is engaged, the mirror glass tilts downward slightly on the front passenger side. This improves your view of the curb and other low-lying obstacles when parking, for example.

Activating

  1. Slide the mirror changeover switch to the driver's side mirror position.

  2. Engage transmission position R.

Deactivating

Slide the mirror changeover switch to the passenger's side mirror position.

Fold in and out

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Fold in and out - 1

Press the button.

Possible up to approx. 15 mph/20 km/h.

For example, this is advantageous

In car washes.
In narrow streets.
For folding back mirrors that were folded away manually.

Mirrors that were folded in are folded out automatically at a speed of approx. 25 mph/40 km/h.

Fold in the mirror in a car wash

Before entering an automatic car wash, fold in the exterior mirrors by hand or with the button; otherwise, they could be damaged, depending on the width of the vehicle.

Automatic heating

Both exterior mirrors are automatically heated whenever the engine is running.

Automatic dimming feature

Both exterior mirrors are automatically dimmed. Photocells are used for control in the Interior rear view mirror, refer to page 52.

Interior rearview mirror

Reducing the blinding effect
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Interior rearview mirror - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car dashboard with a black head and white buttons, no text or symbols visible

From behind when driving at night: turn the knob.

Interior rearview mirror, automatic dimming feature

The concept
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Interior rearview mirror, automatic dimming feature - 1

natural_image Two grayscale images showing a car rearview mirror with an upward arrow indicator (no text or symbols)

Photocells are used for control:

In the mirror glass.
On the back of the mirror.

Functional requirement

For proper operation:

▷ Keep the photocells clean.
Do not cover the area between the inside rearview mirror and the windshield.

Steering wheel

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Do not adjust while driving

Do not adjust the steering wheel while driving; otherwise, an unexpected movement could result in an accident.

Adjusting

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjusting - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a vehicle's center with directional arrows indicating movement or flow (no text or symbols)

The steering wheel can be adjusted in four directions.

Storing the position

Seat, mirror, and steering wheel memory, refer to page 50.

Assistance getting in and out

The steering wheel temporarily moves into the highest position to make it easier to enter and exit the vehicle.

Steering wheel heating

Switching on/off

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off - 1

Press the button.

On: the LED lights up.
▶ Off: the LED goes out.

Transporting children safely

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

The right place for children

Note

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Note - 1

Children in the vehicle

Do not leave children unattended in the

vehicle; otherwise, they could endanger themselves and other persons, e.g., by opening the doors.

Children should always be in the rear

Accident research shows that the safest place for children is in the back seat.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Children should always be in the rear - 1

Transporting children in the rear

Only transport children younger than

13 years of age or shorter than 5 ft/150 cm in the rear in child restraint fixing systems provided in accordance with the age, weight and size of the child; otherwise, there is an increased risk of injury in an accident.

Children 13 years of age or older must wear a safety belt as soon as a suitable child restraint fixing system can no longer be used, due to their age, weight and size.

Children on the front passenger seat

Should it ever be necessary to use a child restraint fixing system in the front passenger seat, make sure that the front, knee and side airbags on the front passenger side are deactivated. Au-

tomatic deactivation of front passenger airbags, refer to page 88.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Children on the front passenger seat - 1

Deactivating the front passenger airbags

If a child restraint fixing system is used in the front passenger seat, the front passenger airbags must be deactivated; otherwise, there is an increased risk of injury to the child when the airbags are triggered, even with a child restraint fixing system.

Installing child restraint fixing systems

Notes

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 1

Manufacturer's information for child restraint fixing systems

To select, mount and use child restraint fixing systems, observe the information provided by the system manufacturer; otherwise, the protective effect can be impaired.

On the front passenger seat

After installing a child restraint fixing system in the front passenger seat, make sure that the front, knee and side airbags on the front passenger side are deactivated.

Deactivate the front passenger airbags automatically, refer to page 88.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - On the front passenger seat - 1

Deactivating the front passenger airbags

If a child restraint fixing system is used in the front passenger seat, the front passenger airbags must be deactivated; otherwise, there is an increased risk of injury to the child when the airbags are triggered, even with a child restraint fixing system.

Seat position and height

Before installing a child restraint fixing system, move the front passenger seat as far back as possible and adjust its height to the highest position to obtain the best possible position for the belt and to offer optimal protection in the event of an accident.

Do not change the seat position and height after this.

Backrest width

Before installing a child restraint fixing system in the front passenger seat, open the backrest width completely. Do not change the backrest width again and do not call up a memory position.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Backrest width - 1

Backrest width for the child seat

Before installing a child restraint fixing system in the front passenger seat, the backrest width must be opened completely. Do not change the adjustment after this; otherwise, the stability of the child seat will be reduced.

Child seat security

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Child seat security - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car seat assembly showing seatbelt and seat cover (no text or symbols visible)

The rear safety belts and the front passenger safety belt can be locked against pulling out for mounting the child restraint fixing systems.

Locking the safety belt

  1. Pull out the belt webbing completely.
  2. Secure the child restraint fixing system with the belt.

  3. Allow the belt webbing to be pulled in and pull it taut against the child restraint fixing system. The safety belt is locked.

Unlocking the safety belt

  1. Unbuckle the belt buckle.
  2. Remove the child restraint fixing system.
  3. Allow the belt webbing to be pulled in completely.

LATCH child restraint fixing system

LATCH: Lower Anchors and Tether for CHil- dren.

Note

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Note - 1

Manufacturer's information for LATCH child restraint fixing systems

To mount and use the LATCH child restraint fixing systems, observe the operating and safety information from the system manufacturer; otherwise, the level of protection may be reduced.

Mounts for the lower LATCH anchors

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Mounts for the lower LATCH anchors - 1

Correctly engage the lower LATCH anchors

Make sure that the lower LATCH anchors have properly engaged and that the child restraint fixing system is resting snugly against the back-rest; otherwise, the degree of protection offered may be reduced.

Before mounting the LATCH child restraint fixing system, pull the belt away from the child restraint fixing system.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Mounts for the lower LATCH anchors - 2

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle showing seat compartments and numbered parts (no text or symbols visible)

Mounts for the lower LATCH anchors are located in the gap between the seat and backrest.

Mounting LATCH child restraint fixing systems

  1. Mount the child restraint fixing system; refer to the operating instructions of the system.
  2. Ensure that both LATCH anchors are properly connected.

Child restraint fixing system with a tether strap

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Child restraint fixing system with a tether strap - 1

LATCH mounting eyes

Only use the mounting eyes for the upper LATCH retaining strap to secure child restraint fixing systems; otherwise, the mounting eyes could be damaged.

Mounting points

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Mounting points - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car showing two rear seats with upward arrows indicating directions (no text or symbols present)

There are two mounting points for child restraint fixing systems with a tether strap.

Retaining strap guide

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Retaining strap guide - 1

Retaining strap

Make sure the upper retaining strap does not run over sharp edges and is not twisted as it passes to the top anchor. Otherwise, the strap will not properly secure the child restraint fixing system in the event of an accident.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Retaining strap guide - 2

text_image 1 2 3 4 5 6

1 Direction of travel
2 Upper retaining strap
3 Head restraint.
4 Rear window shelf
5 Mounting point/eye
6 Hook for upper retaining strap

Attaching the upper retaining strap to the mounting point

  1. Fold the attachment point up.
  2. Guide the upper retaining strap over the head restraint.
  3. Attach the hook of the retaining strap to the mounting eye.
  4. Tighten the retaining strap by pulling it down.

Driving

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Start/Stop button

The concept

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

Pressing the Start/Stop button switches the ignition on or off and starts the engine.

Automatic transmission: the engine starts if the brake is de-

pressed when the Start/Stop button is pressed.

Manual transmission: the engine starts if the clutch is depressed when the Start/Stop button is pressed.

Ignition on

Automatic transmission: press the Start/Stop button, and do not press on the brake pedal at the same time.

Manual-shift transmission: press the Start/Stop button, and do not press on the clutch pedal at the same time.

All vehicle systems are ready for operation.

Most of the indicator and warning lamps in the instrument cluster light up for varying lengths of time.

To save battery power when the engine is off, switch off the ignition and any unnecessary electronic systems/power consumers.

The ignition switches off automatically:

▶ When the vehicle is locked, if the low beams are switched on.
▶ Shortly before the battery is discharged completely, so that the engine can still be started.
If the engine is switched off and the ignition is switched on, the system automatically switches to the radio ready state when the door is opened if the lights are switched off or the daytime running lights are switched on.

Ignition off

Automatic transmission: press the Start/Stop button again, and do not press on the brake pedal at the same time.

Manual-shift transmission: press the Start/Stop button again, and do not press on the clutch pedal at the same time.

All indicator lamps in the instrument cluster go out.

To save battery power when the engine is off, switch off the ignition and any unnecessary electronic systems/power consumers.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Ignition off - 1

Transmission position P with the ignition off

When the ignition is switched off, position P is engaged automatically. When in an automatic car wash, for example, ensure that the ignition is not switched off accidentally.

Ignition automatically cuts off while the vehicle is stationary and the engine is stopped:

During locking, also with the low beams activated.
▶ Shortly before the battery is discharged completely, so that the engine can still be started. This function is only available when the low beams are switched off.

When opening and closing the driver door, if the driver's seat belt is unbuckled and the low beams are switched off.
▶ While the driver's seat belt is unbuckled, if the driver's door is open and the low beams are switched off.

When the ignition is switched off, by opening or closing the driver's door or unbuckling the driver's seat belt, the radio ready state remains active.

Radio ready state

Activate radio ready state:

▶ When the ignition is switched off: press ON/OFF button on the radio.
▶ When the engine is running: press START/STOP button.

Some electronic systems/power consumers remain ready for operation.

Radio ready state switches off automatically:

▶ After approx. 8 minutes.
▶ When the vehicle is locked using the central locking system.
▶ Shortly before the battery is discharged completely, so that the engine can still be started.

Starting the engine

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Enclosed areas

Do not let the engine run in enclosed areas; otherwise, breathing of exhaust fumes may lead to loss of consciousness and death.

The exhaust gases contain carbon monoxide, an odorless and colorless but highly toxic gas.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 2

Unattended vehicle

Do not leave the car unattended with the engine running; otherwise, it presents a potential source of danger.

Before leaving the car with the engine running, set the parking brake and place the transmission in position P or neutral to prevent the car from moving.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 3

Frequent starting in quick succession

Avoid repeated futile attempts at starting the car and avoid starting the car frequently in quick succession. Otherwise, the fuel is not burned or is inadequately burned, and there is the danger of overheating and damaging the catalytic converter.

Do not wait for the engine to warm up while the vehicle remains stationary. Start driving at moderate engine speeds.

Manual transmission

Starting the engine

  1. Depress the brake pedal.
  2. Press on the clutch and shift to neutral.
  3. Press the Start/Stop button.

The ignition is activated automatically for a certain time and is stopped as soon as the engine starts.

Automatic-Transmission

Starting the engine

  1. Depress the brake pedal.
  2. Press the Start/Stop button.

The ignition is activated automatically for a certain time and is stopped as soon as the engine starts.

Engine stop

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Take the remote control with you

Take the remote control with you when leaving the vehicle so that children, for example, cannot release the parking brake.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 2

Set the parking brake and further secure the vehicle as required

Set the parking brake firmly when parking; otherwise, the vehicle could roll. On steep upward and downward inclines, further secure the vehicle, for example, by turning the steering wheel in the direction of the curb.

Before driving into a car wash

In order for the vehicle to be able to roll into a car wash, heed the information regarding Washing in automatic car washes, refer to page 273.

Manual transmission

Switching off the engine

  1. With the vehicle at a standstill, press the Start/Stop button.
  2. Shift into first gear or reverse.
  3. Set the parking brake.

Automatic-Transmission

Switching off the engine

  1. Engage transmission position P with the vehicle stopped.
  2. Press the Start/Stop button.

The engine is switched off.

The radio ready state is switched on.

  1. Set the parking brake.

Automatic Engine Start/Stop Function

The concept

The automatic engine start-stop function helps save fuel. The system switches off the engine during a stop, e.g., in a traffic congestion or at traffic lights. The ignition remains switched on. The engine starts again automatically for driving off.

Automatic mode

The automatic engine start/stop function is operational after each engine start.

The function is activated above a certain speed.

▶ Automatic transmission: from 5 mph, approx. 9 km/h.

Engine stop

The engine is switched off automatically during a stop under the following conditions:

Automatic transmission:

The selector lever is in transmission position D.
The brake pedal remains pressed while the vehicle is stationary or the vehicle is held by Automatic Hold.
The driver's safety belt is buckled or the driver's door is closed.

The air volume of the air conditioner is reduced when the engine is switched off.

Display in the instrument cluster

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display in the instrument cluster - 1

The display indicates that the Automatic Engine Start/Stop Function is ready for an automatic engine start.

Note

The engine is not switched off automatically in the following situations:

▶ External temperature below approx. +37 °F/+3 °C.
▶ External temperature above approx. +95 °F/+35 °C and the automatic climate control is operating.
The passenger compartment has not yet been heated or cooled to the required level.
The engine is not yet at operating temperature.
The wheels are at a sharp angle or the steering wheel is being turned.

▶ After driving in reverse.
Fogging of the windows when the automatic climate control is switched on.
The vehicle battery charge is very low.
The engine compartment lid is unlocked.
▷ HDC is activated.
The parking assistant is activated.
▶ Stop-and-go traffic.

Starting the engine

The engine starts automatically under the following conditions:

▶ Automatic transmission:

By releasing the brake pedal.

When Automatic Hold is activated: press the accelerator.

After the engine starts, accelerate as usual.

Safety mode

After the engine switches off automatically, it will not start again automatically if any one of the following conditions are met.

The driver's safety belt is unbuckled and the driver's door is open.
The hood was unlocked.

The indicator lamps come on.

The engine can only be started via the Start/Stop button.

Note

Even if driving away was not intended, the deactivated engine starts up automatically in the following situations:

Excessive warming of the passenger compartment when the cooling function is switched on.
The steering wheel is turned.
▶ Automatic transmission: the transmission position is changed from D to N, R, or M/S.

▶ Automatic transmission: the transmission position is changed from P to N, D, R, or M/S.
▶ Automatic transmission: the accelerator and the brake are pressed at the same time.
Fogging of the windows when the automatic climate control is switched on.
The vehicle battery charge is very low.
Excessive cooling of the passenger compartment when the heating is switched on.

Preventing an automatic engine stop with automatic transmission

The concept

To make it possible to drive away very quickly, such as at an intersection, the automatic engine stop can be actively prevented.

Preventing an engine stop using the brake pedal

The engine stop can be actively prevented within one second after the vehicle comes to a standstill.

▶ Immediately after the vehicle comes to a standstill, briefly press the brake pedal forcefully.
Then press the brake pedal with normal braking force.

Activating/deactivating the system manually

Using the button
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating/deactivating the system manually - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard and steering wheel (no visible text or symbols)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating/deactivating the system manually - 2

Press the button.

▶ LED comes on: Auto Start Stop function is deactivated.
The engine is started during an automatic engine stop.
The engine can only be stopped or started via the Start/Stop button.
▶ LED goes out: Auto Start Stop function is activated.

Switching off the vehicle during an automatic engine stop

During an automatic engine stop, the vehicle can be switched off permanently, e.g., when leaving it.

  1. Press the Start/Stop button. The ignition is switched off. The Automatic Engine Start/Stop Function is deactivated.
    Automatic transmission: the transmission position P is engaged automatically.

  2. Set the parking brake.

Engine start as usual via Start-/Stop button.

Automatic deactivation

In certain situations, the Automatic Engine Start/Stop Function is deactivated automatically for safety reasons, such as when the driver is detected to be absent.

Malfunction

The automatic engine start/stop function no longer switches of the engine automatically. A Check Control message is displayed. It is possible to continue driving. Have the system checked.

Parking brake

The concept

The parking brake is primarily intended to prevent the vehicle from rolling while parked; it brakes the rear wheels.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle dashboard with control panels and a rotary dial (no text or symbols visible)

Setting

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting - 1

Pull the switch.

The LED lights up.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting - 2

The indicator lamp lights up in red. The parking brake is set.

Lower lamp: indicator lamp in Canadian models

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting - 3

Set the parking brake and further secure the vehicle as required

Set the parking brake firmly when parking; otherwise, the vehicle could roll. On steep upward and downward inclines, further secure the vehicle, for example, by turning the steering wheel in the direction of the curb.

While driving

Use while driving serves as an emergency braking function:

Pull the switch and hold it. The vehicle brakes hard while the button is being pulled.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - While driving - 1

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - While driving - 2

The indicator lamp lights up in red, a signal sounds and the brake lamps light up.

Lower lamp: indicator lamp in Canadian models

If the vehicle is braked to a speed of approx.

2 mph/3 km/h, the parking brake remains set.

Releasing

With the ignition switched on:

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Releasing - 1

Manual transmission: Press the switch while the brake or clutch is pressed.

Automatic transmission: Press the switch while the brake is pressed or transmission position P is engaged.

The LED and indicator lamp go out.

The parking brake is released.

Automatic Release in cars with automatic transmission

For automatic release, operate the accelerator pedal.

The LED and indicator lamp go out.

Subject to the following requirements, the parking brake is automatically released by operation of the accelerator pedal:

▶ Engine on.
▶ Drive position engaged.
▶ Driver buckled in and doors closed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic Release in cars with automatic transmission - 1

Inadvertent operation of the accelerator pedal

Make sure that the accelerator pedal is not operated unintentionally; otherwise, the vehicle is set in motion and there is a risk of an accident.

Automatic Hold

The concept

This system assists the driver by automatically setting and releasing the brake, such as when moving in stop-and-go traffic.

The vehicle is automatically held in place when it is stationary.

On inclines, the system prevents the vehicle from rolling backward when driving away.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle dashboard with control panels and a rotary dial (no text or symbols visible)

For your safety

Under the following conditions, Automatic Hold is automatically deactivated and the parking brake is set:

The engine is switched off.
A door is opened and driver's safety belt is unbuckled while the vehicle is stationary.
The moving vehicle is brought to a standstill using the parking brake.

PARK

The indicator lamp switches from green to red and the letters AUTO H go out.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - For your safety - 1

Lower lamp: indicator lamp in Canadian models

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - For your safety - 2

Leaving the vehicle with the engine running

Before leaving the vehicle with the engine running, engage position P of the automatic transmission and ensure that the parking brake is set. Otherwise, the vehicle may begin to roll.

Activating

This function can be activated when the driver's door is closed and the safety belt is fastened, or while driving.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating - 1

Press the button.

The LED and the letters AUTO H light up.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating - 2

The indicator lamp lights up.

Automatic Hold is activated.

Deactivating

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Deactivating - 1

Press the button again.

The LED and the letters AUTO H go

out.

Automatic Hold is deactivated.

If the vehicle is being held by Automatic Hold, press on the brake pedal to deactivate it.

When the parking brake, refer to page 61, is set manually, Automatic Hold is deactivated automatically.

Driving

Automatic Hold is activated: the vehicle is automatically secured against rolling when it stops.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Driving - 1

The indicator lamp lights up in green.

Step on the accelerator pedal to drive off.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Driving - 2

The brake is released automatically.

The indicator lamp goes out.

Lower lamp: indicator lamp in Canadian models

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Driving - 3

Before driving into a car wash

Deactivate Automatic Hold; otherwise, the parking brake will be set when the vehicle is stationary and the vehicle will no longer be able to roll.

Parking

The parking brake is automatically set if the engine is switched off while the vehicle is being held by Automatic Hold.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Parking - 1

The indicator lamp changes from green to red.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Parking - 2

The parking brake is not set if the engine is switched off while the vehicle is coast-

ing to a halt. Automatic Hold is deactivated.

Lower lamp: indicator lamp in Canadian models

Automatic Hold remains activated during an engine stop brought about by the Automatic Engine Start/Stop Function.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Parking - 3

Take the remote control with you

Take the remote control with you when

leaving the vehicle so that children, for example, cannot release the parking brake.

Malfunction

In the event of a failure or malfunction of the parking brake, secure the vehicle against rolling using a wheel chock, for example, when leaving it.

Turn signal, high beams, headlamp flasher

Turn signal

Using turn signals

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Using turn signals - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing a car's seatbelt with directional arrows indicating left and right motion (no text or symbols)

Press the lever beyond the resistance point.

To switch off manually, press the lever to the resistance point.

Unusually rapid flashing of the indicator lamp indicates that a turn signal bulb has failed.

Triple turn signal activation

Press the lever to the resistance point.

The turn signal flashes three times.

The function can be activated or deactivated:

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Lighting"
  3. "Triple turn signal"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Triple turn signal activation - 1

text_image Lighting Pathway light: 0 s ✓ Triple turn signal □ Daytime running lamps □ Welcome light

Signaling briefly

Press the lever to the resistance point and hold it there for as long as you want the turn signal to flash.

High beams, headlamp flasher

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - High beams, headlamp flasher - 1

text_image 1 2

▶ High beams, arrow 1.
▶ Headlamp flasher, arrow 2.

Washer/wiper system

Switching the wipers on/off and brief wipe

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching the wipers on/off and brief wipe - 1

Do not switch on the wipers if frozen

Do not switch on the wipers if they are fro-

zen onto the windshield; otherwise, the wiper blades and the windshield wiper motor may be damaged.

Switching on

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with steering wheel, air vent, and control panel (no visible text or symbols)

Press the wiper levers up.

The lever automatically returns to its initial position when released.

▶ Normal wiping speed: press up once.

The wipers switch to intermittent operation when the vehicle is stationary.

▶ Fast wiping speed: press up twice or press once beyond the resistance point.

The wipers switch to normal speed when the vehicle is stationary.

Switching off and brief wipe

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching off and brief wipe - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with a black control panel and directional arrow (no text or symbols visible)

Press the wiper levers down.

The lever automatically returns to its initial position when released.

▶ Brief wipe: press down once.
To switch off normal wipe: press down once.
To switch off fast wipe: press down twice.

Rain sensor

The concept

The time between wipes is controlled automatically and depends on the intensity of the rainfall.

The sensor is located on the windshield, directly in front of the interior rearview mirror.

Activating/deactivating the rain sensor

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating/deactivating the rain sensor - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with a black USB drive and control buttons (no visible text or symbols)

Press the button on the wiper lever.

When activated, the wipers move over the wind-shield once.

The LED in the steering column stalk lights up.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating/deactivating the rain sensor - 2

Deactivate the rain sensor in car washes

Deactivate the rain sensor when passing

through an automatic car wash; otherwise, damage could be caused by undesired wiper activation.

Rain sensor sensitivity

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Rain sensor sensitivity - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car dashboard with directional arrows indicating movement or change (no text or symbols)

Turn the thumbwheel.

Clean the windshield, headlamps

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Clean the windshield, headlamps - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with steering wheel and directional arrow (no text or symbols)

Pull the lever.

The system sprays washer fluid on the wind-shield and activates the wipers briefly.

In addition, the headlamps are cleaned at regular intervals when the vehicle lights are switched on.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Clean the windshield, headlamps - 2

Do not use the washer system at freezing temperatures

Do not use the washers if there is any danger that the fluid will freeze on the windshield; otherwise, your vision could be obscured. For this reason, use antifreeze.

Avoid using the washer when the reservoir is empty; otherwise, you could damage the pump.

Windshield washer nozzles

The washer jets are automatically heated whenever the ignition is switched on.

Fold-out position of the wipers

Required when changing the wiper blades or under frosty conditions, for example.

  1. Switch off the ignition.
  2. Under frosty conditions, ensure that the wiper blades are not frozen onto the windshield.
  3. Press the wiper lever up beyond the point of resistance and hold it for approx. 3 seconds, until the wiper remains in a nearly vertical position.

After the wipers are folded back down, the wiper system must be reactivated.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Fold-out position of the wipers - 1

Fold the wipers back down

Before switching the ignition on, fold the wipers back down to the windshield; otherwise, the wipers may become damaged when they are switched on.

  1. Switch on the ignition.
  2. Press the wiper levers down. The wipers move to their resting position and are ready for operation.

Washer fluid

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Antifreeze for washer fluid

Antifreeze is flammable. Therefore, keep it away from sources of ignition.

Only keep it in the closed original container and inaccessible to children.

Follow the instructions on the container.

Washer fluid reservoir

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Washer fluid reservoir - 1

Adding washer fluid

Only add washer fluid when the engine is cool, and then close the cover completely to avoid contact between the washer fluid and hot engine parts.

Otherwise, there is the danger of fire and a risk to personal safety if the fluid is spilled.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Washer fluid reservoir - 2

natural_image Close-up of a black circular device with white warning symbol on a grid background (no readable text or symbols)

All washer nozzles are supplied from one reservoir.

Fill with water and – if required – with a washer antifreeze, according to the manufacturer's recommendations.

Mix the washer fluid before adding to maintain the correct mixing ratio.

Manual transmission

Shifting

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Shifting - 1

Shifting into 5th or 6th gear

When shifting into 5th or 6th gear, push the gearshift lever to the right; otherwise inadvertent shifting into the 3rd or 4th gear could lead to engine damage.

Reverse gear

Select only when the vehicle is stationary. When the gearshift lever is pressed to the left, a slight resistance needs to be overcome.

Automatic transmission with Steptronic

Transmission positions

D Drive, automatic position

Position for normal vehicle operation. All forward gears are available.

R is Reverse

Select only when the vehicle is stationary.

N is Neutral

Use in automatic car washes, for example. The vehicle can roll.

When the ignition is switched off, refer to page 57, position P is engaged automatically.

P Park

Select only when the vehicle is stationary. The drive wheels are blocked.

P is engaged automatically:

▶ After the engine is switched off, if the car is in radio ready state, refer to page 58, or if the ignition is switched off, refer to page 57, and if position R or D is engaged.
▶ With the ignition is off, if position N is engaged.
If the safety belt is unbuckled, the driver's door is opened, and the brake pedal is not pressed while the vehicle is stationary and transmission position R or D is engaged.

Before exiting the vehicle, make sure that position P of the automatic transmission is engaged. Otherwise, the vehicle may begin to roll.

Kickdown

Kickdown is used to achieve maximum driving performance. Press on the gas pedal beyond the resistance point at the full throttle position.

Engaging the transmission position

▶ Transmission position P can only be disengaged if the engine is running and the brake pedal is pressed.
With the vehicle stationary, press on the brake pedal before shifting out of P or N; otherwise, the shift command will not be executed: shift lock.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Engaging the transmission position - 1

Depress the brake until you start driving

To prevent the vehicle from creeping after you select a driving position, maintain pressure on the brake pedal until you are ready to start.

Engaging D, R and N

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Engaging D, R and N - 1

text_image R N Z D

Briefly push the selector lever in the desired direction, beyond a resistance point if necessary. After releasing the selector lever, it returns to its center position.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Engaging D, R and N - 2

natural_image Interior view of a car gear shift lever with control panel and mode dial (no text or symbols visible)

Press unlock button, in order to:

Engage R.
▶ Shift out of P.

Engaging P

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Engaging P - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car gear shift lever (no text or symbols visible)

Press button P.

Sport program DS and manual mode M/S

Activating sport program DS

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating sport program DS - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car gear shift lever mechanism (no text or symbols visible)

Push the selector lever to the left out of transmission position D.

DS is displayed in the instrument cluster.

The sport program of the transmission is activated.

Activating the M/S manual mode

Push the selector lever to the left out of transmission position D.

Push the selector lever forward or backward.

Manual mode becomes active and the gear is changed.

The engaged gear is displayed in the instrument cluster, e.g., M1.

To shift down: press the selector lever forward.

To shift up: pull the selector lever rearwards.

The vehicle only shifts up or down at appropriate engine and road speeds, e.g., it does not shift down if the engine speed is too high.

The selected gear is briefly displayed in the instrument cluster, followed by the current gear.

Ending the sport program/manual mode

Push the selector lever to the right.

D is displayed in the instrument cluster.

Shift paddles for Sport automatic transmission

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Shift paddles for Sport automatic transmission - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with BMW logo and directional arrows indicating steering wheel (no text or symbols)

The shift paddles on the steering wheel allow you to shift gears quickly while keeping both hands on the steering wheel.

If the shift paddles on the steering wheel are used to shift gears in automatic mode, the transmission temporarily switches to manual mode.

If the shift paddles are not used and the vehicle is not accelerated for a certain time, the system switches back into automatic mode if the selector lever is in transmission position D.

▶ Shift up: pull right shift paddle.

▶ Shift down: pull left shift paddle.

The vehicle only shifts up or down at appropriate engine and road speeds, e.g., it does not shift down if the engine speed is too high.

The selected gear is briefly displayed in the instrument cluster, followed by the current gear.

Displays in the instrument cluster

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displays in the instrument cluster - 1

The transmission position is displayed, e.g.: P.

Displays

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment

is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e. g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Instrument cluster
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 1

text_image 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 mph km/h 1/min x 1000 1/2 0 160 °F 250 340

1 Fuel gauge 72
2 Speedometer
3 Indicator/warning lamps 70
4 Tachometer 72

5 Oil temperature 72

6 Electronic displays 70

7 Reset miles 73

Electronic displays

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Electronic displays - 1

text_image 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40 41 42 43 44 45 46 47 48 49 50 51 52 53 54 55 56 57 58 59 60 61 62 63 64 65 66 67 68 69 70 71 72 73 74 75 76 77 78 79 80 81 82 83 84 85 86 87 88 89 90 91 92 93 94 95 96 97 98 99 100

1 Messages, e.g. Check Control 70

Time 73

Date 73

2 Range 73

3 Computer 76

4 Navigation display 158

Service requirements 74

Check Control

The concept

The Check Control system monitors functions in the vehicle and notifies you of malfunctions in the monitored systems.

A Check Control message is displayed as a combination of indicator or warning lamps and text messages in the instrument cluster and in the Head-up Display.

In addition, an acoustic signal may be output and a text message may appear on the Control Display.

Miles/trip miles 73

5 Selection list, forinstance radio 75

Current fuel consumption 74

Energy recovery 74

External temperature 73

6 Transmission display 68

Indicator/warning lamps

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 1

text_image 80.01 80.01 40 120 30 140 20 160 50 30 20 10 5 3 2 1 4 S Max 300 54.4 Max 74.0 A BRACE OFF S MAX 300 54.4

The indicator and warning lamps can light up in a variety of combinations and colors.

Several of the lamps are checked for proper functioning and light up temporarily when the engine is started or the ignition is switched on.

Overview: indicator/warning lamps

Symbol Function or system

Turn signal
Parking brake
Parking brake in Canadian models
Automatic Hold
Front fog lamps
High beams
High-beam Assistant
Parking lamps, headlamp control
Active Cruise Control
Vehicle detection, Active Cruise Control
Cruise control
Lane departure warning

Symbol Function or system

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 1
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 2
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 3
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 4
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 5
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 6
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 7
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 8
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 9
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 10
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 11
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Overview: indicator/warning lamps - 12

Text messages

Text messages in combination with a symbol in the instrument cluster explain a Check Control

message and the meaning of the indicator and warning lamps.

Supplementary text messages

Addition information, such as on the cause of a fault or the required action, can be called up via Check Control.

The supplementary text of urgent messages is displayed on the Control Display automatically.

Symbols

Depending on the Check Control message, the following functions can be selected.

"Owner's Manual"

Display additional information about the Check Control message in the integrated owner's manual.

"Service request"

Contact the service partner.

"Roadside Assistance"

Contact Roadside Assistance.

Hiding Check Control messages
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbols - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the left side of the seatbelt with a black control knob and a white arrow pointing to it (no text or symbols visible)

Press the computer button on the turn signal lever.

Some Check Control messages are displayed continuously and are not cleared until the malfunction is eliminated. If several malfunctions occur at once, the messages are displayed consecutively.

These messages can be hidden for approx. 8 seconds. After this time, they are displayed again automatically.

▶ Other Check Control messages are hidden automatically after approx. 20 seconds. They are stored and can be displayed again later.

Displaying stored Check Control messages

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"
  3. "Check Control"
  4. Select the text message.

Messages after trip completion

Special messages that are displayed during driving are displayed again after the ignition is switched off.

Fuel gauge
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Messages after trip completion - 1

The vehicle inclination may cause the display to vary. Notes on refueling, refer to page 242.

Tachometer
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Messages after trip completion - 2

Always avoid engine speeds in the red warning field. In this range, the fuel supply is interrupted to protect the engine.

Engine oil temperature

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Engine oil temperature - 1

▶ Cold engine: the pointer is at the low temperature end. Drive at moderate engine and vehicle speeds.

Normal operating temperature: the pointer is in the middle or in the left half of the temperature display.

Hot engine: the pointer is at the high temperature end. A Check Control message is displayed in addition.

Coolant temperature

Should the coolant, and with it the engine, become too hot, a Check Control message is displayed.

Check the coolant level, refer to page 259.

Odometer and trip odometer

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Odometer and trip odometer - 1

▶ Odometer, arrow 1.
▶ Trip odometer, arrow 2.

Display/reset miles

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display/reset miles - 1

Press the knob.

When the ignition is switched off, the time, external temperature and odometer are displayed.

▶ When the ignition is switched on, the trip odometer is reset.

External temperature

External temperature warning

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - External temperature warning - 1

If the display drops to +37 °F/+3 °C, a signal sounds.

A Check Control message is displayed.

There is the increased danger of

ice.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - External temperature warning - 2

Ice on roads

Even at temperatures above +37 °F/+3 °C, there can be a risk of ice on roads.

Therefore, drive carefully on bridges and shady roads, for example, to avoid the increased danger of an accident.

Time

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Time - 1

The time is displayed at the bottom of the instrument cluster.

Date

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Date - 1

The date is displayed in the instrument cluster.

Setting the date and date format, refer to page 78.

Range

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Range - 1

After the reserve range is reached:

▶ A Check Control message is displayed briefly.
The remaining range is shown on the computer.

When a dynamic driving style is used, such as when corners are taken rapidly, engine functions are not ensured.

The Check Control message appears continuously below a range of approx. 30 miles/50 km.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Range - 2

Refuel promptly

Refuel no later than at a range 30 miles/ 50 km, or engine functions are not ensured and damage may occur.

Displaying the cruising range

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Info display"
  3. "Additional indicators"

The range is displayed in the instrument cluster.

Range when destination guidance is activated in the navigation system

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Range when destination guidance is activated in the navigation system - 1

When destination guidance is activated in the navigation system, the range up to the destination is displayed.

Current fuel consumption

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Current fuel consumption - 1

Displays the current fuel consumption. You can check whether you are currently driving in an efficient and environmentally-friendly manner.

Displaying the current fuel consumption

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Info display"
  3. "Additional indicators"

The bar display for the current fuel consumption is displayed in the instrument cluster.

Energy recovery

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Energy recovery - 1

The energy of motion of the vehicle is converted to electrical energy while coasting. The vehicle battery is partially charged and fuel consumption can be low-

ered.

Service requirements

Display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display - 1

The driving distance or the time to the next service is displayed briefly after the ignition is switched on.

The current service requirements can be read out from the remote control by the service specialist.

Data regarding the maintenance status or legally mandated inspections of the vehicle are automatically transmitted to your service center before a service due date, Automatic Service Request, refer to page 234.

Detailed information on service requirements

More information on the scope of service required can be displayed on the Control Display.

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"
  3. "Service required"

Required maintenance procedures and legally mandated inspections are displayed.

  1. Select an entry to call up detailed information.

Symbols

Symbols Description

OK

No service is currently required.

The deadline for service or a legally mandated inspection is approaching.

The service deadline has already passed.

Entering appointment dates

Enter the dates for the required inspections. Ensure that the vehicle date and time are set correctly.

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"
  3. "Service required"

  4. "§ Vehicle inspection"

  5. "Date:"
  6. Create the settings.
  7. Confirm.

The entered date is stored.

Automatic Service Request

Data regarding the maintenance status or legally mandated inspections of the vehicle are automatically transmitted to your service center before a service due date.

You can check when your service center was notified.

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"
  3. Open "Options".
  4. "Last Service Request"

Gear shift indicator

The concept

The system recommends the most fuel efficient gear in the current driving situation.

Displays

Indicators to shift up or down are displayed in the instrument cluster.

Symbols Description

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbols Description - 1

Fuel efficient gear is engaged.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbols Description - 2

Shift up to fuel efficient gear.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbols Description - 3

Shift down to fuel efficient gear.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbols Description - 4

Shift into neutral.

Selection lists in the instrument cluster

The concept
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selection lists in the instrument cluster - 1

text_image No One But You ✓ Rock'n Roll Boy Shine A Light

The following can be operated using the buttons and the thumbwheel on the steering wheel:

▶ Current audio source.
▶ Redial on telephone.
▶ Activation of the voice activation system.

Activating a list and creating the setting
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selection lists in the instrument cluster - 2

natural_image Diagram of a vehicle interior with directional arrows indicating movement or force (no text or symbols)

On the right side of the steering wheel, turn the thumbwheel to activate the corresponding list. Using the thumbwheel, select the desired setting and confirm it by pressing the thumbwheel.

Computer

Indication in the info display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indication in the info display - 1

The information from the computer is shown in the Info display in the instrument cluster.

Calling up information on the info display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Calling up information on the info display - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the left side of the dashboard with a black control switch and a white arrow pointing to the left side (no visible text or symbols)

Press the computer button on the turn signal lever.

Information is displayed on the info display of the instrument cluster.

Information at a glance

Repeatedly pressing the button on the turn signal lever calls up the following information on the info display:

Range.
▶ Average fuel consumption.
▶ Average speed.
Date.
▶ Time of arrival

When destination guidance is activated in the navigation system.

Distance to destination

When destination guidance is activated in the navigation system.

▶ Arrow view of navigation system

When destination guidance is activated in the navigation system.

Adjusting the info display

You can select what information from the computer is to be displayed on the info display of the instrument cluster.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Info display"
  3. Select the desired displays.

Information in detail

Range

Displays the estimated cruising range available with the remaining fuel.

It is calculated based on your driving style over the last 20 miles/30 km. If there is only enough fuel left for less than 45 miles/80 km, the color of the display changes.

Average fuel consumption

This is calculated for the period during which the engine is running.

The average fuel consumption is calculated on the basis of various distances.

Average speed

Periods in which the vehicle is parked with the engine manually stopped do not enter into the calculation of the average speed.

Resetting average values

Press and hold the computer button on the turn signal lever.

Distance to destination

The distance remaining to the destination is displayed if a destination is entered in the navigation system before the trip is started.

The distance to the destination is adopted automatically.

Time of arrival

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Time of arrival - 1

text_image 11:05 am 200 400

The estimated time of arrival is displayed if a destination is entered in the navigation system before the trip is started.

The time must be correctly set.

Speed limit

Display of a speed limit which, when reached, should cause a warning to be issued.

Renewed warning if the vehicle speed drops below the set speed limit once by at least 3 mph/5 km/h.

Displaying, setting or changing the limit

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Speed"
  3. "Warning at:"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displaying, setting or changing the limit - 1

text_image Speed Warning at: 6 km/h Warning Select current speed
  1. Turn the controller until the desired limit is displayed.
  2. Press the controller.

The speed limit is stored.

Activating/deactivating the limit

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Speed"
  3. "Warning"
  4. Press the controller.

Applying your current speed as the limit

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Speed"
  3. "Select current speed"
  4. Press the controller.

The current vehicle speed is stored as the limit.

Trip computer

There are two types of computer.

▶ "Onboard info": the values can be reset as often as necessary.
▶ "Trip computer": the values provide an overview of the current trip.

Resetting the trip computer

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Trip computer"
  3. "Reset": all values are reset.

"Automatically reset": all values are reset approx. 4 hours after the vehicle comes to a standstill.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Resetting the trip computer - 1

text_image Trip computer 17:26 Depart. 1:54 std Duration 118 km Distance 7.8 l/100 km Cons. 65.2 km/h Speed Reset

Display on the Control Display

Display the computer or trip computer on the Control Display.

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Onboard info" or "Trip computer"

Resetting the fuel consumption or speed

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Onboard info"
  3. "Cons." or "Speed"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Resetting the fuel consumption or speed - 1

text_image Onboard info 535 km Range 342 km To dest. 02:45 Arrival 7.8 l/100 km Cons. 70.9 km/h Speed
  1. "Yes"

Settings on the Control Display

Time

Setting the time zone

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Time/Date"
  3. "Time zone"
  4. Select the desired time zone.

The time zone is stored.

Setting the time

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Time/Date"

  3. "Time:"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the time - 1

text_image Time/Date Time: 09:30 Format: 24 h Date: 27.05.2012 Format: tt.mm.jjjj
  1. Turn the controller until the desired hours are displayed.
  2. Press the controller.
  3. Turn the controller until the desired minutes are displayed.
  4. Press the controller.

The time is stored.

Setting the time format

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Time/Date"
  3. "Format:"
  4. Select the desired format.

The time format is stored.

Date

Setting the date

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Time/Date"
  3. "Date:"
  4. Turn the controller until the desired day is displayed.
  5. Press the controller.
  6. Make the necessary settings for the month and year.

The date is stored.

Setting the date format

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Time/Date"
  3. "Format:"
  4. Select the desired format.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the date format - 1

text_image Date format ✓ dd.mm.yyyy mm/dd/yyyy

The date format is stored.

Language

Setting the language

To set the language on the Control Display:

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Language/Units"
  3. "Language:"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the language - 1

text_image Language/Units Language: Deutsch Speech mode: Default Consumption: l/100 km Distance: km Temperature: °C
  1. Select the desired language.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Setting the voice dialog

Voice dialog for the voice activation system, refer to page 23.

Units of measure

Setting the units of measure

To set the units for fuel consumption, route/distance and temperature:

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Language/Units"
  3. Select the desired menu item.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the units of measure - 1

text_image Language/Units Language: Deutsch Speech mode: Default Consumption: l/100 km Distance: km Temperature: °C
  1. Select the desired unit.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Brightness

Setting the brightness

To set the brightness of the Control Display:

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Control display"
  3. "Brightness"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the brightness - 1

text_image Control display Brightness Driving mode info
  1. Turn the controller until the desired brightness is set.
  2. Press the controller.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Depending on the light conditions, the brightness control may not be clearly visible.

Lamps

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

At a glance
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 1

text_image 2 1 3 4 5 6 7

1 Rear fog lamps
2 Front fog lamps
3 Automatic headlamp control, Adaptive Light Control, High-beam Assistant, Welcome lamps, daytime running lights
4 Lamps off, daytime running lights
5 Parking lamps, daytime running lights
6 Low beams, welcome lamps, High-beam Assistant
7 Instrument lighting

Parking lamps/low beams, headlamp control

General information

If the driver door is opened with the ignition switched off, the exterior lighting is automatically switched off at the following switch settings:

0, ≡D ≡D ^A

Parking lamps

Switch position the vehicle lamps light up on all sides, e.g., for parking.

Do not use the parking lamps for extended periods; otherwise, the battery may become discharged and it would then be impossible to start the engine.

When parking, it is preferable to switch on the one-sided roadside parking lamps, refer to page 82.

Low beams

Switch position 📋 with the ignition switched on: the low beams light up.

Welcome lamps

When parking the vehicle, leave the switch in position for: the parking and interior lamps light up briefly when the vehicle is unlocked.

Activating/deactivating

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Lighting"
  3. "Welcome light"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating/deactivating - 1

text_image Lighting Pathway light: 0 s □ Triple turn signal □ Daytime running lamps ✓ Welcome light

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Headlamp courtesy delay feature

The low beams stay lit for a short while after the ignition is switched off, if the lamps are switched off and the headlamp flasher is switched on.

Setting the duration

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Lighting"
  3. "Pathway light.: s"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the duration - 1

text_image Lighting Pathway light.: 0 s □ Triple turn signal □ Daytime running lamps □ Welcome light
  1. Set the duration.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Automatic headlamp control

Switch position 📂 the low beams are switched on and off automatically, e.g., in tunnels, in twilight or if there is precipitation. The indicator lamp in the instrument cluster lights up.

A blue sky with the sun low on the horizon can cause the lights to be switched on.

The low beams always stay on when the fog lamps are switched on.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic headlamp control - 1

Personal responsibility

The automatic headlamp control cannot serve as a substitute for your personal judgment in determining when the lamps should be switched on in response to ambient lighting conditions.

For example, the sensors are unable to detect fog or hazy weather. To avoid safety risks, you should always switch on the lamps manually under these conditions.

Daytime running lights

With the ignition switched on, the daytime running lights light up in position 0, D Q or . After the ignition is switched off, the parking lamps light up in position D Q

Activating/deactivating

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Lighting"
  3. "Daytime running lamps"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating/deactivating - 1

text_image Lighting Pathway light: 0 s □ Triple turn signal □ Daytime running lamps □ Welcome light

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Roadside parking lamps

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Roadside parking lamps - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with directional arrows indicating left and right movement (no text or symbols)

The vehicle can be illuminated on one side.

Switching on

With the ignition switched off, press the lever either up or down past the resistance point for approx. 2 seconds.

Switching off

Briefly press the lever to the resistance point in the opposite direction.

Adaptive light control

The concept

Adaptive light control is a variable headlamp control system that enables dynamic illumination of the road surface.

Depending on the steering angle and other parameters, the light from the headlamp follows the course of the road.

In tight curves, e.g., on mountainous roads or when turning, an additional, corner-illuminating lamp is switched on that lights up the inside of the curve when the vehicle is moving below a certain speed.

Activating

Switch position 📋 with the ignition switched on.

The turning lamps are automatically switched on depending on the steering angle or the use of turn signals.

To avoid blinding oncoming traffic, the Adaptive Light Control directs light towards the front passenger side when the vehicle is at a standstill.

When driving in reverse, only the turning lamp is active.

Self-leveling headlights

The self-leveling headlights feature adapts the light distribution to the contours of the road.

The light distribution is lowered on hilltops to avoid blinding oncoming traffic and tilted in depressions to increase visibility.

Malfunction

A Check Control message is displayed.

Adaptive light control is malfunctioning or has failed. Have the system checked as soon as possible.

High-beam Assistant

The concept

When the low beams are switched on, this system automatically switches the high beams on and off. The procedure is controlled by a sensor on the front of the interior rearview mirror. The assistant ensures that the high beams are switched on whenever the traffic situation allows. The driver can intervene at any time and switch the high beams on and off as usual.

Activating

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with a left-side control panel and seatbelt (no visible text or symbols)
  1. Turn the light switch to
  2. Press the button on the turn signal lever, arrow.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating - 2

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating - 3

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating - 4

The indicator lamp in the instrument cluster lights up.

When the lights are switched on, the high beams are switched on and off automatically.

The system responds to light from oncoming traffic and traffic driving ahead of you, and to adequate illumination, e.g., in towns and cities.

Switching the high beams on and off manually

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching the high beams on and off manually - 1

text_image Diagram of car seatbelt mechanism showing two directional arrows labeled 1 and 2 pointing to key controls in the dashboard.

▶ High beams on, arrow 1.
▶ High beams off/headlamp flasher, arrow 2.

To reactivate the High-beam Assistant, press the button on the turn signal lever.

System limits

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 1

Personal responsibility

The high-beam assistant cannot serve as a substitute for the driver's personal judgment of when to use the high beams. Therefore, manually switch off the high beams in situations where this is required to avoid a safety risk.

The system is not fully functional in situations such as the following, and driver intervention may be necessary:

In very unfavorable weather conditions, such as fog or heavy precipitation.
In detecting poorly-lit road users, such as pedestrians, cyclists, horseback riders and wagons; when driving close to train or ship traffic; and at animal crossings.
In tight curves, on hilltops or in depressions, in cross traffic or half-obscured oncoming traffic on freeways.
In poorly-lit towns and cities and in the presence of highly reflective signs.
At low speeds.
When the windshield in front of the interior rearview mirror is fogged over, dirty or covered with stickers, etc.

Camera

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Camera - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car's rearview mirror and dashboard (no text or symbols visible)

The camera is located near the base of the mirror.

Keep windshield clean and clear in the area in front of the interior rear view mirror.

Fog lamps

Front fog lamps

The parking lamps or low beams must be switched on.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Front fog lamps - 1

Press the button. The green indicator lamp lights up.

If the automatic headlamp control, refer to page 82, is activated, the low beams will come on automatically when you switch on the front fog lamps.

Instrument lighting

Adjusting

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjusting - 1

The parking lamps or low beams must be switched on to adjust the brightness.

Adjust the brightness using the thumbwheel.

Interior lamps

General information

The interior lamps, footwell lamps, entry lamps and courtesy lamps are controlled automatically.

The brightness of some of these lamps is influenced by the thumbwheel for the instrument lighting.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

text_image SOS MONOR OF BAG OFF 2 1 2

1 Interior lamps

2 Reading lamp

Switching the interior lamps on and off

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching the interior lamps on and off - 1

Press the button.

To switch off permanently: press the button for approx. 3 seconds.

Switch back on: press button.

Reading lamps

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Reading lamps - 1

Press the button.

Reading lamps are located at the front and rear next to the interior lamps.

With the interior lamps shut off, the reading lamps cannot be switched on.

Bang & Olufsen High End Surround Sound System

Adjusting speaker lighting, refer to page 177

Safety

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment

is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e. g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Airbags

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Airbags - 1

text_image Technical diagram of a car interior with numbered components for identification

1 Front airbag, driver
2 Front airbag, front passenger
3 Head airbag

4 Side airbag
5 Knee airbags

Front airbags

Front airbags help protect the driver and front passenger by responding to frontal impacts in which safety belts alone cannot provide adequate restraint.

Side airbags

In a lateral impact, the side airbag supports the side of the body in the chest and lap area.

Head airbags

In a lateral impact, the head airbag supports the head.

Knee airbag

The knee airbag supports the legs in a frontal impact.

Protective action

Airbags are not triggered in every impact situation, e.g., in less severe accidents or rear-end collisions.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Protective action - 1

Information on how to ensure the optimal protective effect of the airbags

Keep at a distance from the airbags.
▶ Always grasp the steering wheel on the steering wheel rim, holding your hands at the 3 o'clock and 9 o'clock positions, to keep the danger of injury to your hands or arms as low as possible if the airbag is triggered.
There should be no people, animals, or objects between an airbag and a person.
Do not use the cover of the front airbag on the front passenger side as a storage area.
Keep the dashboard and window on the front passenger side clear, i.e., do not cover with adhesive labels or coverings, and do not attach holders such as for navigation instruments and mobile phones.
▶ Make sure that the front passenger is sitting correctly, i.e., keeps his or her feet and legs in the footwell; otherwise, leg injuries can occur if the front airbag is triggered.
Do not place slip covers, seat cushions or other objects on the front passenger seat that are not approved specifically for seats with integrated side airbags.
Do not hang pieces of clothing, such as jackets, over the backrests.
▶ Make sure that occupants keep their heads away from the side airbag and do not rest against the head airbag; otherwise, injuries can occur if the airbags are triggered.
Do not remove the airbag restraint system.
Do not remove the steering wheel.
Do not apply adhesive materials to the air-bag cover panels, cover them or modify them in any way.

▶ Never modify either the individual components or the wiring in the airbag system. This also applies to steering wheel covers, the dashboard, the seats, the roof pillars and the sides of the headliner.

Even when all instructions are followed closely, injury from contact with the airbags cannot be ruled out in certain situations.

The ignition and inflation noise may lead to short-term and, in most cases, temporary hearing impairment in sensitive individuals.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Protective action - 2

In the case of a malfunction, deactivation and after triggering of the airbags

Do not touch the individual components immediately after the system has been triggered; otherwise, there is the danger of burns.

Only have the airbags checked, repaired or dismantled and the airbag generator scrapped by your service center or a workshop that has the necessary authorization for handling explosives.

Non-professional attempts to service the system could lead to failure in an emergency or undesired triggering of the airbag, either of which could result in injury.

Warnings and information on the airbags are also found on the sun visors.

Functional readiness of the airbag system

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Functional readiness of the airbag system - 1

When the ignition is switch on, the warning lamp in the instrument cluster lights up briefly and thereby indicates the op-

erational readiness of the entire airbag system and the belt tensioner.

Airbag system malfunctioning

▶ Warning lamp does not come on when the ignition is turned on.
The warning lamp lights up continuously.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Airbag system malfunctioning - 1

When there is a malfunction, have the air-bag system checked immediately

When there is a malfunction, have the airbag system checked immediately; otherwise, there is a risk that the system does not function as expected in the event of an accident despite corresponding severity of the accident.

Automatic deactivation of the front passenger airbags

The system determines whether the front passenger seat is occupied by measuring the resistance of the human body.

The front, knee, and side airbag on the front passenger side are activated or deactivated accordingly.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic deactivation of the front passenger airbags - 1

Leave feet in the footwell

Make sure that the front passenger keeps

his or her feet in the footwell; otherwise, the front passenger airbags may not function properly.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic deactivation of the front passenger airbags - 2

Child restraint fixing system in the front passenger seat

Before transporting a child on the front passenger seat, see the safety notes and instructions under Children on the front passenger seat.

Malfunction of the automatic deactivation system

When transporting older children and adults, the front passenger airbags may be deactivated in certain sitting positions. In this case, the indicator lamp for the front passenger airbags lights up.

In this case, change the sitting position so that the front passenger airbags are activated and the indicator lamp goes out.

If it is not possible to activate the airbags, have the person sit in the rear.

To make sure that the occupied seat cushion can be evaluated correctly

Do not attach covers, cushions, ball mats or other items to the front passenger seat un-

less they are specifically recommended by the manufacturer of your vehicle.

Do not place any electronic devices on the passenger seat if a child restraint system is to be installed on it.
Do not place objects under the seat that could press against the seat from below.

Indicator lamp for the front passenger airbags

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator lamp for the front passenger airbags - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car air conditioner control panel with no visible text or symbols on the panel itself.

The indicator lamp for the front passenger airbags indicates the operating state of the front passenger airbags.

The lamp indicates whether the airbags are activated or deactivated.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator lamp for the front passenger airbags - 2

The indicator lamp lights up when a child who is properly seated in a child restraint fixing system intended for that purpose is detected on the seat or the seat is empty. The airbags on the front passenger side are not activated.

The indicator lamp does not light up when, for example, a correctly seated person of sufficient size is detected on the seat. The airbags on the front passenger side are activated.

Detected child seats

The system generally detects children seated in a child seat, especially in the child seats that were required by NHTSA when the vehicle was manufactured. After installing a child seat, make sure that the indicator lamp for the front pas-

senger airbags lights up. This indicates that the child seat has been detected and the front passenger airbags are not activated.

Strength of the driver's and front passenger airbag

The strength with which the driver's and front passenger airbags are triggered depends on the position of the driver's and front passenger seats.

To maintain the accuracy of this function over the long-term, calibrate the front seats when a corresponding message appears on the Control Display.

Calibrating the front seats

A corresponding message appears on the Control Display.

  1. Move the respective seat forward all the way.
  2. Move the respective seat forward again. It moves forward briefly.
  3. Readjust the seat to the desired position.
    The calibration procedure is completed when the message on the Control Display disappears.
    If the message continues to be displayed, repeat the calibration.
    If the message does not disappear after a repeat calibration, have the system checked as soon as possible.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Calibrating the front seats - 1

Unobstructed area of movement

Ensure that the area of movement of the

seats is unobstructed to avoid personal injury or damage to objects.

Tire Pressure Monitor TPM

The concept

The tire inflation pressure is measured in the four mounted tires. The system notifies you if there is a significant loss of pressure in one or more tires.

Functional requirements

The system must have been reset when the inflation pressure was correct; otherwise, reliable signaling of a flat tire is not ensured. Always use wheels with TPM electronics to ensure that the system will operate properly. Reset the system after each correction of the tire inflation pressure and after every tire or wheel change.

System limits

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 1

Sudden tire damage

Sudden serious tire damage caused by external influences cannot be indicated in advance.

The system does not operate correctly if it has not been reset. For example, a flat tire may be indicated despite correct tire inflation pressures.

The system is inactive and cannot indicate a flat tire:

For a mounted wheel without TPM electronics.
When the TPM is disturbed by other systems or devices with the same radio frequency.

Status display

The current status of the Tire Pressure Monitor TPM can be displayed on the Control Display, e.g., whether or not the TPM is active.

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"
  3. "Tire Pressure Monitor - TPM"

The status is displayed.

Status display

The tire and system status is indicated by the color of the tires.

A change in the tire inflation pressure during driving is taken into account.

A correction is only necessary if this is indicated by the TPM

Wheels, green

The tire inflation pressure is equal to the target state.

One wheel is yellow

A flat tire or major drop in inflation pressure in the indicated tire.

All wheels are yellow

▶ A flat tire or major drop in inflation pressure in several tires.
The system was not reset after a wheel change and thus warns based on the inflation pressures initialized last.
▶ A flat tire in one or more tires while the system is being reset.

Wheels, gray

The system cannot detect a flat tire. Reasons for this may be:

▷ TPM is being reset.
▶ Disturbance by systems or devices with the same radio frequency.
▶ Malfunction.

For Canadian models: additional information

The status display additionally shows the current tire inflation pressures and tire temperatures.

When correcting the tire inflation pressures, note the following:

The tire pressure increases as the tire temperature increases.

Therefore, only correct the tire inflation pressure when the tire is at the ambient temperature.

Compare the displayed tire temperature with the external temperature in the instrument cluster.

Resetting the system

Reset the system after each correction of the tire inflation pressure and after every tire or wheel change.

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"
  3. "Reset"
  4. Start the engine - do not drive away.
  5. Reset the tire pressure using "Reset".
  6. Drive away.

The tires are shown in gray and "Resetting TPM..." is displayed.

After driving for a few minutes, the set tire inflation pressures are applied as set values. The resetting process is completed automatically during driving. The tires are shown in green and "TPM active" is shown on the Control Display.

The trip can be interrupted at any time. If you drive away again, the process resumes automatically.

If a flat tire is detected during a reset, all tires are displayed in yellow.

Low tire pressure message

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Low tire pressure message - 1

The yellow warning lamp lights up. A Check Control message is displayed.

There is a flat tire or a major loss in tire inflation pressure.

The system was not reset after a wheel change and thus warns based on the inflation pressures initialized last.

  1. Reduce your speed and stop cautiously. Avoid sudden braking and steering maneuvers.
  2. Check whether the vehicle is fitted with regular tires or run-flat tires.

Run-flat tires, refer to page 253, are labeled with a circular symbol containing the letters RSC marked on the tire sidewall.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Low tire pressure message - 2

Do not continue driving without run-flat tires

Do not continue driving if the vehicle is not equipped with run-flat tires; continued driving may result in serious accidents.

When a low inflation pressure is indicated, DSC Dynamic Stability Control is switched on if necessary.

Actions in the event of a flat tire

Normal tires

  1. Identify the damaged tire.

Do this by checking the air pressure in all four tires.

If the tire inflation pressure in all four tires is correct, the Tire Pressure Monitor may not have been initialized. In this case, initialize the system.

If an identification is not possible, please contact the service center.

  1. Rectify the flat tire.

Use of tire sealant, e.g., the Mobility System, may damage the TPM wheel electronics. In this case, have the electronics checked at the next opportunity and have them replaced if necessary.

Run-flat tires

Maximum speed

You can continue driving with a damaged tire at speeds up to 50 mph/80 km/h.

Continued driving with a flat tire

If continuing to drive with a damaged tire:

  1. Avoid sudden braking and steering maneuvers.

  2. Do not exceed a speed of 50 mph/80 km/h.

  3. Check the air pressure in all four tires at the next opportunity.

If the tire inflation pressure in all four tires is correct, the Tire Pressure Monitor may not have been initialized. In this case, initialize the system.

Possible driving distance with complete loss of tire inflation pressure:

The possible driving distance after a loss of tire inflation pressure depends on the cargo load and the driving style and conditions.

For a vehicle containing an average load, the possible driving distance is approx. 50 miles/80 km.

When the vehicle is driven with a damaged tire, its handling characteristics change, e.g., reduced lane stability during braking, a longer braking distance, and altered self-steering properties. Adjust your driving style accordingly. Avoid abrupt steering maneuvers or driving over obstacles, e.g., curbs, potholes, etc.

Because the possible driving distance depends on how the vehicle is used during the trip, the actual distance may be smaller or greater depending on the driving speed, road conditions, external temperature, cargo load, etc.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Continued driving with a flat tire - 1

Continued driving with a flat tire

Drive moderately and do not exceed a speed of 50 mph/80 km/h.

A loss of tire inflation pressure results in a change in the handling characteristics, e.g., reduced lane stability during braking, a longer braking distance and altered self-steering properties.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Continued driving with a flat tire - 2

Final tire failure

Vibrations or loud noises while driving can indicate the final failure of the tire. Reduce speed and stop; otherwise, pieces of the tire could come loose and cause an accident. Do not continue driving, and contact your service center.

Message when the system was not reset

A Check Control message is displayed.

The system detected a wheel change but was not reset.

Warnings regarding the current tire inflation pressure are not reliable.

Check the tire inflation pressure and reset the system.

Malfunction

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Malfunction - 1

The yellow warning lamp flashes and then lights up continuously. A Check Control message is displayed. No flat tire can be detected.

Display in the following situations:

▶ A wheel without TPM electronics is fitted: have the service center check it if necessary.
▶ Malfunction: have the system checked by your service center.
▷ TPM could not be fully reset. Reset the system again.
Disturbance by systems or devices with the same radio frequency: after leaving the area of the disturbance, the system automatically becomes active again.

Declaration according to NHTSA/FMVSS 138 Tire Pressure Monitoring System

Each tire, including the spare (if provided) should be checked monthly when cold and inflated to the inflation pressure recommended by the vehicle manufacturer on the vehicle placard or tire inflation pressure label. (If your vehicle has tires of a different size than the size indicated on the vehicle placard or tire inflation pressure label, you should determine the proper tire inflation pressure for those tires.) As an added safety feature, your vehicle has been equipped with a tire pressure monitoring system (TPMS) that illuminates a low tire pressure telltale when one or more of your tires is significantly under-in-

flated. Accordingly, when the low tire pressure telltale illuminates, you should stop and check your tires as soon as possible, and inflate them to the proper pressure. Driving on a significantly under-inflated tire causes the tire to overheat and can lead to tire failure. Under-inflation also reduces fuel efficiency and tire tread life, and may affect the vehicle's handling and stopping ability. Please note that the TPMS is not a substitute for proper tire maintenance, and it is the driver's responsibility to maintain correct tire pressure, even if under-inflation has not reached the level to trigger illumination of the TPMS low tire pressure telltale. Your vehicle has also been equipped with a TPMS malfunction indicator to indicate when the system is not operating properly. The TPMS malfunction indicator is combined with the low tire pressure telltale. When the system detects a malfunction, the telltale will flash for approximately one minute and then remain continuously illuminated. This sequence will continue upon subsequent vehicle start-ups as long as the malfunction exists. When the malfunction indicator is illuminated, the system may not be able to detect or signal low tire pressure as intended. TPMS malfunctions may occur for a variety of reasons, including the installation of replacement or alternate tires or wheels on the vehicle that prevent the TPMS from functioning properly. Always check the TPMS malfunction telltale after replacing one or more tires or wheels on your vehicle to ensure that the replacement or alternate tires and wheels allow the TPMS to continue to function properly.

FTM Flat Tire Monitor

The concept

The system does not measure the actual inflation pressure in the tires.

It detects a pressure loss in a tire by comparing the rotational speeds of the individual wheels while moving.

In the event of a pressure loss, the diameter and therefore the rotational speed of the corresponding wheel change. This is detected and reported as a flat tire.

Functional requirements

The system must have been initialized when the tire inflation pressure was correct; otherwise, reliable signaling of a flat tire is not ensured. Initialize the system after each correction of the tire inflation pressure and after every tire or wheel change.

System limits

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 1

Sudden tire damage

Sudden serious tire damage caused by external influences cannot be indicated in advance.

A natural, even pressure loss in all four tires cannot be detected. Therefore, check the tire inflation pressure regularly.

The system could be delayed or malfunction in the following situations:

When the system has not been initialized.
▶ When driving on a snowy or slippery road surface.
▶ Sporty driving style: slip in the drive wheels, high lateral acceleration.
▶ When driving with snow chains.

Status display

The current status of the Flat Tire Monitor can be displayed on the Control Display, e.g., whether or not the FTM is active.

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"
  3. "E" at Tire Monitor"

The status is displayed.

Initialization

The initialization process adopts the set inflation tire pressures as reference values for the detection of a flat tire. Initialization is started by confirming the inflation pressures.

Do not initialize the system when driving with snow chains.

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"
  3. "Reset"
  4. Start the engine - do not drive away.
  5. Start the initialization with "Reset".
  6. Drive away.

The initialization is completed while driving, which can be interrupted at any time.

The initialization automatically continues when driving resumes.

Indication of a flat tire

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indication of a flat tire - 1

The yellow warning lamp lights up. A Check Control message is displayed.

There is a flat tire or a major loss in tire inflation pressure.

  1. Reduce your speed and stop cautiously. Avoid sudden braking and steering maneuvers.
  2. Check whether the vehicle is fitted with regular tires or run-flat tires.

Run-flat tires, refer to page 253, are labeled with a circular symbol containing the letters RSC marked on the tire sidewall.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indication of a flat tire - 2

Do not continue driving without run-flat tires

Do not continue driving if the vehicle is not equipped with run-flat tires; continued driving may result in serious accidents.

When a flat tire is indicated, DSC Dynamic Stability Control is switched on if necessary.

Actions in the event of a flat tire

Normal tires

  1. Identify the damaged tire.

Do this by checking the air pressure in all four tires.

If the tire inflation pressure in all four tires is correct, the Flat Tire Monitor may not have been initialized. In this case, initialize the system.

If an identification is not possible, please contact the service center.

  1. Rectify the flat tire.

Run-flat tires

Maximum speed

You can continue driving with a damaged tire at speeds up to 50 mph/80 km/h.

Continued driving with a flat tire

If continuing to drive with a damaged tire:

  1. Avoid sudden braking and steering maneuvers.
  2. Do not exceed a speed of 50 mph/80 km/h.
  3. Check the air pressure in all four tires at the next opportunity.

If the tire inflation pressure in all four tires is correct, the Flat Tire Monitor may not have been initialized. In this case, initialize the system.

Possible driving distance with complete loss of tire inflation pressure:

The possible driving distance after a loss of tire inflation pressure depends on the cargo load and the driving style and conditions.

For a vehicle containing an average load, the possible driving distance is approx. 50 miles/80 km.

When the vehicle is driven with a damaged tire, its handling characteristics change, e.g., reduced lane stability during braking, a longer braking distance, and altered self-steering properties. Adjust your driving style accordingly. Avoid abrupt steering maneuvers or driving over obstacles, e.g., curbs, potholes, etc.

Because the possible driving distance depends on how the vehicle is used during the trip, the actual distance may be smaller or greater depending on the driving speed, road conditions, external temperature, cargo load, etc.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Continued driving with a flat tire - 1

Continued driving with a flat tire

Drive moderately and do not exceed a d of 50 mph/80 km/h.

A loss of tire inflation pressure results in a change in the handling characteristics, e.g., reduced lane stability during braking, a longer braking distance and altered self-steering properties.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Continued driving with a flat tire - 2

Final tire failure

Vibrations or loud noises while driving can indicate the final failure of the tire. Reduce speed and stop; otherwise, pieces of the tire could come loose and cause an accident. Do not continue driving, and contact your service center.

Lane departure warning

The concept

This system issues a warning at speeds above approx. 40 mph/65 km/h if the vehicle is about to leave the lane on roads with lane markings.

The steering wheel begins vibrating gently. The time of the warning may vary depending on the current driving situation.

The system does not provide a warning if the turn signal is set before leaving the lane.

Switching on/off

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with six function buttons (hair, car, lift, lift, climb) on the right side (no text or symbols on buttons)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off - 2

Press the button.

On: the LED lights up.
▶ Off: the LED goes out.

The system can issue warnings at speeds above approx. 40 mph/65 km/h.

The state is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display - 1

flowchart
graph TD
    A["1"] --> B["2"]
    style A fill:#f9f,stroke:#333
    style B fill:#bbf,stroke:#333

▶ Lines, arrow 1: the system is activated.
▶ Arrows, arrow 2: at least one lane marking was detected and warnings can be issued.

Issued warning

If you leave the lane and if a lane marking has been detected, the steering wheel begins vibrating.

If the turn signal is set before changing the lane, a warning is not issued.

End of warning

The warning ends:

▶ Automatically after approx. 3 seconds.
▶ When returning to your own lane.
When braking hard.
When using the turn signal.

System limits

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 1

Personal responsibility

The system cannot serve as a substitute for the driver's personal judgment of the course of the road and the traffic situation.

In the event of a warning, do not jerk the steering wheel, as you may lose control of the vehicle.

The system may not be fully functional in the following situations:

In heavy fog, rain or snowfall.
In the event of worn, poorly visible, merging, diverging, or multiple lane markings such as in construction areas.
When lane markings are covered in snow, ice, dirt or water.
In tight curves or on narrow lanes.
▶ When the lane markings are covered by objects.
When driving very close to the vehicle in front of you.
When driving toward bright lights.
When the windshield in front of the interior rearview mirror is fogged over, dirty or covered with stickers, etc.

Malfunctions

Steering wheel vibration

Frequent activation of the steering wheel vibration causes the system to overheat.

This causes the lane departure warning to become deactivated.

Let the system cool and reactivate it by pressing the button.

Camera

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Camera - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car's rearview mirror and dashboard (no text or symbols visible)

The camera is located near the base of the mirror.

Keep windshield clean and clear in the area in front of the interior rear view mirror.

Active Blind Spot Detection

The concept

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

flowchart
graph TD
    A["Top Car"] --> B["Left Road"]
    A --> C["Right Road"]
    A --> D["Bottom Car"]
    style A fill:#f9f,stroke:#333
    style B fill:#ccf,stroke:#333
    style C fill:#ccf,stroke:#333
    style D fill:#ccf,stroke:#333

Two radar sensors below the rear bumper monitor the area behind and next to the vehicle at speeds above approx. 30 mph/50 km/h.

The system indicates whether there are vehicles in the blind spot, arrow 1, or approaching from behind on the adjacent lane, arrow 2.

The lamp in the exterior mirror housing lights up dimly.

Before you change lanes after setting the turn signal, the system issues a warning in the situations described above.

The lamp in the housing of the exterior mirror flashes and the steering wheel vibrates.

Switching on/off

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car's back panel with six directional icons (hair, car, truck, snowflake, bicycle) on the right side (no text or symbols beyond icons)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off - 2

Press the button.

On: the LED lights up.
▶ Off: the LED goes out.

The system can issue warnings at speeds above approx. 30 mph/50 km/h.

The state is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display - 1

natural_image Side view of a car's front mirror and side panel (no text or symbols visible)

Information stage

The dimmed lamp in the mirror housing indicates when there are vehicles in the blind spot or approaching from behind.

Warning

If the turn signal is set while a vehicle is in the critical zone, the steering wheel vibrates briefly and the lamp in the mirror housing flashes brightly.

The warning stops when the turn signal is switched off, or the other vehicle leaves the critical zone.

System limits

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 1

Personal responsibility

The system cannot serve as a substitute for the driver's personal judgment of the traffic situation.

In the event of a warning, do not jerk the steering wheel, as you may lose control over the vehicle.

The system may not be fully functional in the following situations:

When a vehicle is approaching at a speed much faster than your own.
In heavy fog, rain or snowfall.
In tight curves or on narrow lanes.

Malfunctions

Steering wheel vibration

Frequent activation of the steering wheel vibration causes the system to overheat.

This causes Active Blind Spot Detection to become deactivated.

Let the system cool and reactivate it by pressing the button.

Radar sensors

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Radar sensors - 1

natural_image Front view of a white car with BMW logo and side panel (no visible text or symbols)

The radar sensors are located under the rear bumper.

The system may not be fully functional in the following situations:

▷ Dirty or icy bumper.
▶ Stickers on the bumper.

A Check Control message is displayed when the system is not fully functional.

For US owners only

The transmitter and receiver units comply with part 15 of the FCC/Federal Communication Commission regulations. Operation is governed by the following:

FCC ID:

NBG009014A.

Compliance statement:

This device complies with part 15 of the FCC Rules. Operation is subject to the following two conditions:

This device may not cause harmful interference, and
this device must accept any interference received, including interference that may cause undesired operation.

Any unauthorized modifications or changes to these devices could void the user's authority to operate this equipment.

Brake force display

The concept

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

natural_image Side-by-side comparison of a car's rear window and side profile, showing front and side views (no text or symbols)

During normal brake application, the outer brake lamps light up.
During heavy brake application, the inner brake lamps light up in addition.

Driving stability control systems

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Antilock Brake System ABS

ABS prevents locking of the wheels during braking.

The vehicle remains steerable even during full brake applications, thus increasing active safety.

ABS is operational every time you start the engine.

Brake assistant

When you apply the brakes rapidly, this system automatically produces the maximum braking force boost. It thus helps to achieve the shortest possible braking distance during full braking. This system utilizes all of the benefits provided by ABS.

Do not reduce the pressure on the brake pedal for the duration of the full braking.

Adaptive brake assistant

In combination with the Active Cruise Control, this system ensures that the brakes respond even more rapidly when braking in critical situations. Refer also to Collision warning, refer to page 112.

Drive-off assistant

This system supports driving away on gradients. The parking brake is not required.

  1. Hold the vehicle in place with the foot brake.
  2. Release the foot brake and drive away without delay.

After the foot brake is released, the vehicle is held in place for approx. 2 seconds.

Depending on the vehicle load, the vehicle may roll back slightly.

Driving off without delay After releasing the foot b

After releasing the foot brake, start driving without delay, since the drive-off assistant will not hold the vehicle in place for more than approx. 2 seconds and the vehicle will begin rolling back.

DSC Dynamic Stability Control

The concept

DSC prevents traction loss in the driving wheels when driving away and accelerating.

DSC also recognizes unstable vehicle conditions, such as fishtailing or nose-diving. Subject to physical limits, DSC helps to keep the vehicle on a steady course by reducing engine speed and by applying brakes at individual wheels.

Adjust your driving style to the situation An appropriate driving style is always the responsibility of the driver.

The laws of physics cannot be repealed, even with DSC.

Therefore, do not reduce the additional safety margin by driving in a risky manner.

Indicator/warning lamps

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 1

The indicator lamp flashes: DSC controls the drive forces and brake forces.

The indicator lamp lights up: DSC has

failed.

Deactivating DSC: DSC OFF

When DSC is deactivated, driving stability is reduced during acceleration and when driving in bends.

Stabilizing interventions by the Integral Active Steering system are only performed by the rear axle steering.

To increase vehicle stability, activate DSC again as soon as possible.

Deactivating DSC

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Deactivating DSC - 1

Press and hold the button, but not longer than approx. 10 seconds, until the

indicator lamp for DSC lights up in the instrument cluster and DSC OFF is displayed.

The DSC system is switched off.

Activating DSC

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating DSC - 1

Press the button.

DSC OFF and the DSC indicator lamp

go out.

Indicator/warning lamps

When DSC is deactivated, DSC OFF is displayed in the instrument cluster.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 1

The indicator lamp lights up: DSC is de-activated.

DTC Dynamic Traction Control

The concept

The DTC system is a version of the DSC in which forward momentum is optimized.

The system ensures maximum forward momentum on special road conditions, e.g., unplowed snowy roads, but driving stability is limited.

It is therefore necessary to drive with appropriate caution.

You may find it useful to briefly activate DTC under the following special circumstances:

▶ When driving in slush or on uncleared, snow-covered roads.
When rocking the vehicle or driving off in deep snow or on loose surfaces.
▶ When driving with snow chains.

Deactivating/activating DTC Dynamic Traction Control

Activating the Dynamic Traction Control DTC provides maximum traction on loose ground. Driving stability is limited during acceleration and when driving in bends.

Activating DTC

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating DTC - 1

Press the button.

TRACTION is displayed in the instrument cluster and the indicator lamp for DSC lights up.

Deactivating DTC

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Deactivating DTC - 1

Press the button again.

TRACTION and the DSC indicator lamp

go out.

Indicator/warning lamps

When DTC is activated, TRACTION is displayed in the tachometer.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 1

The indicator lamp lights up: DTC Dynamic Traction Control is activated.

xDrive

xDrive is the all-wheel-drive system of your vehicle. Concerted action by the xDrive and DSC further optimize traction and driving dynamics. The xDrive all-wheel-drive system variably distributes the drive forces to the front and rear axles as demanded by the driving situation and road surface.

HDC Hill Descent Control

The concept

HDC is a downhill driving assistant that automatically controls vehicle speed on steep downhill gradients. Without the brakes being applied, the vehicle moves at slightly more than twice walking speed.

Hill Descent Control can be activated at speeds below approx. 22 mph/35 km/h. When driving downhill, the vehicle reduces its speed to approx. twice walking speed and then keeps its speed constant.

As long as there is active braking, the system is on standby. The system does not brake the vehicle during this time.

Use HDC in low gears or in transmission position D or R only.

Increasing or decreasing vehicle speed

Specify desired speed in the range from approx. 4 mph/6 km/h to approx. 15 mph/25 km/h using the rocker switch of the cruise control on the steering wheel. Vehicle speed can be changed by lightly accelerating.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Increasing or decreasing vehicle speed - 1

text_image SET RES I/O

▶ Press up the rocker switch to the point of resistance: the speed increases gradually.
▶ Press up the rocker switch past the point of resistance: the speed increases while the rocker switch is pressed.
▶ Press down the rocker switch to the point of resistance: the speed decreases gradually.
▶ Press down the rocker switch past the point of resistance: when driving forward, the speed decreases to approx. 6 mph/10 km/h; when reversing, the speed decreases to approx. 4 mph/6 km/h.

Activating HDC

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating HDC - 1

natural_image Close-up of a car's front panel showing control buttons and navigation icons (no readable text or symbols)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating HDC - 2

Press the button; the LED above the button lights up.

Deactivating HDC

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Deactivating HDC - 1

Press the button again and the LED goes out. HDC is automatically deactivated the approx. 37 mph/60 km/h.

Display in the instrument cluster

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display in the instrument cluster - 1

The selected speed is displayed in the speedometer.

▷ Green: the system is actively braking the vehicle.
▶ Orange: the system is on standby.

Malfunction

A message is displayed in the instrument cluster. HDC is not available, e.g., due to elevated brake temperatures.

Adaptive Drive

The concept

Adaptive Drive includes the following systems:

▷ Dynamic Drive, refer to page 101
▷ Dynamic Damping Control, refer to page 101

The system increases driving stability and driving comfort.

Dynamic Drive

The concept

Dynamic Drive reduces the lateral inclination of the vehicle that occurs during rapid driving in curves or during quick evasive maneuvers.

Driving stability and driving comfort are increased under all driving conditions. The system utilizes active stabilizer bars on the front and rear axles that react immediately to all driving situations.

Programs

The system offers two different programs.

The programs can be selected via the Driving Experience Switch, refer to page 102.

SPORT

Sporty tuning for greater driving agility.

COMFORT

Comfort-oriented tuning for optimal comfort.

Dynamic Damping Control

The concept

This system reduces undesirable vehicle motion when using a dynamic driving style or traveling on uneven road surfaces.

The system enhances driving dynamics and comfort as required for the road surface and driving style.

Programs

The system offers three different programs.

The programs can be selected via the Driving Experience Switch, refer to page 102.

SPORT

Consistently sporty control of the shock absorbers for greater driving agility.

COMFORT

Balanced tuning between the COMFORT+ and SPORT programs.

COMFORT+

Comfort-oriented tuning of the shock absorbers for optimal traveling comfort.

Integral Active Steering

The concept

Integral Active Steering is a combination of Active Steering and rear axle steering.

Active Steering varies the steering angle of the wheels in relation to the steering wheel movement as a function of the speed.

At speeds up to approx. 37 mph/60 km/h, e.g., in curves, the steering angle is increased, i.e., steering becomes more direct.

The rear axle steering acts to increase maneuverability by turning the rear wheels slightly in a direction opposite to the front wheels.

At higher speeds, the steering angle is increasingly reduced.

The rear wheels are turned to the same angle as the front wheels.

In critical situations, Integral Active Steering can specifically steer the front and rear wheels to stabilize the vehicle before the driver intervenes, e.g., when braking where road conditions differ on the left and right sides of the vehicle.

Initializing

In rare cases, it may become necessary to initialize the Integral Active Steering.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Initializing - 1

The warning lamp lights up. A Check Control message is displayed.

  1. With the engine running, turn the steering wheel all the way to the left and right several times in a uniform manner until the warning lamp disappears.
  2. Have the system checked if the warning lamp does not go out after moving the steering wheel approx. 6 times or if the steering wheel is at an angle.

Using snow chains

Ensure that the rear axle steering is deactivated when using snow chains, refer to page 253.

Programs

The system offers two different programs.

The programs can be selected via the Driving Experience Switch, refer to page 102.

SPORT

Consistently sporty tuning of the Integral Active Steering for greater driving agility.

COMFORT

Balanced tuning of the Integral Active Steering for optimal traveling comfort.

Malfunction

In the event of a malfunction, the steering wheel must be turned further, while the vehicle responds more sensitively to steering wheel movements in the higher speed range.

The stability-enhancing intervention may be de-activated.

Proceed cautiously and drive defensively.

Have the system checked.

Driving Experience Switch

The concept

The Driving Experience Switch can be used to adjust the driving dynamics of the vehicle. For this purpose various programs are available for selection that are activated via the two buttons of the Driving Experience Switch and the DSC OFF-button.

Operating the programs

Press the button Program

OFFDSC OFF
TRACTION
SPORT+
SPORT
COMFORT
COMFORT-
ECO PRO

For Adaptive Drive or Dynamic Damper Control, the lower button is labeled with COMFORT.

Automatic program change

The system automatically switches to COM-FORT in the following situations:

▶ Failure of Integral Active Steering.
▶ Failure of Dynamic Damping Control.
The vehicle has a flat tire.

DSC OFF

Driving stability is limited during acceleration and when driving in bends.

Stabilizing interventions by the Integral Active Steering system are only performed by the rear axle steering.

To increase vehicle stability, activate DSC again as soon as possible.

Activating DSC OFF

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating DSC OFF - 1

Press and hold the button, but not longer than approx. 10 seconds, until the indicator lamp for the DSC lights up in the instrument cluster and DSC OFF is displayed in the tachometer.

The DSC system is switched off.

Deactivating DSC OFF

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Deactivating DSC OFF - 1

Press the button.

DSC OFF and the DSC indicator lamp

go out.

Indicator/warning lamps

When DSC OFF is activated, DSC OFF is displayed in the tachometer.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 1

The indicator lamp lights up: DSC OFF is activated.

TRACTION

Maximum traction on loose road surfaces. DTC Dynamic Traction Control is switched on. Driving stability is limited during acceleration and when driving in bends.

Activating TRACTION

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating TRACTION - 1

Press the button.

TRACTION is displayed in the tachometer.

The DSC indicator lamp in the instrument cluster lights up.

Deactivating TRACTION

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Deactivating TRACTION - 1

Press the button again.

TRACTION and the DSC indicator lamp go out.

Indicator/warning lamps

When TRACTION is activated, TRACTION is displayed in the tachometer.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 1

The indicator lamp lights up: TRACTION is activated.

SPORT+

Sporty driving with optimized chassis and suspension with limited driving stabilization.

Dynamic Traction Control is switched on.

The driver handles several of the stabilization tasks.

Activating SPORT+

Press the button repeatedly until SPORT+ appears in the tachometer and the DSC indicator lamp lights up in the instrument cluster.

Indicator/warning lamps

SPORT+ is displayed in the instrument cluster.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 1

The indicator lamp lights up: DTC Dynamic Traction Control is activated.

SPORT

Consistently sporty tuning of the suspension for greater driving agility with maximum driving stabilization.

The program can be configured to individual specifications.

The configuration is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Activating SPORT

Press the button repeatedly until SPORT appears in the tachometer.

Configuring SPORT

If the display on the Control Display, refer to page 105, is activated, the sport program can be set to individual specifications.

After the sport program is activated, select "Configure SPORT mode" on the displayed panel and configure the program.

Optionally, the sport program can be configured before it is activated:

  1. "Settings"
  2. "SPORT mode"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Configuring SPORT - 1

text_image Settings Speed Climate Lighting Door locks SPORT mode Profiles Allow rear control
  1. Configure the program.

This configuration is retrieved when the sport program is activated.

COMFORT

For a balanced tuning with maximum driving stabilization.

Activating COMFORT

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating COMFORT - 1

Press the button repeatedly until the program display in the tachometer

goes out.

In certain situations, the system automatically changes to the NORMAL program, automatic program change, refer to page 103.

COMFORT+

Comfort-oriented tuning of the shock absorbers for optimal traveling comfort with maximum driving stabilization.

Activating COMFORT+

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating COMFORT+ - 1

Press the button repeatedly until COM-FORT+ appears in the tachometer.

ECO PRO

Consistent tuning to minimize fuel consumption for maximum range with maximum driving stabilization.

Comfort functions and the engine controller are adjusted.

The program can be configured to individual specifications.

Activating ECO PRO

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating ECO PRO - 1

Press button repeatedly until ECO PRO is displayed in the instrument cluster.

Configuring ECO PRO

  1. Activate ECO PRO.
  2. "Configure ECO PRO"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Configuring ECO PRO - 1

text_image Configure ECO PRO ECO PRO limit: 130 km/h ✓ ECO PRO speed warning ✓ ECO PRO climate control ECO PRO potential 0% 50% 100%

or

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Driving mode"

  3. "Configure ECO PRO"

Make the desired settings.

Displays in the instrument cluster

Selected program

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selected program - 1

The selected program is displayed in the tachometer.

Program selection

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Program selection - 1

Pressing the button displays a list of the selectable programs.

Display on the Control Display

Program changes can be displayed briefly on the Control Display.

To do so, make the following settings:

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Driving mode"
  3. "Driving mode info"

Driving comfort

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Active Cruise Control with Stop & Go function, ACC

The concept

This system can be used to select a desired speed that the vehicle will maintain automatically on clear roads.

To the extent possible, the system automatically adjusts the speed to a slower vehicle ahead of you.

The distance that the vehicle maintains to the vehicle ahead of you can be varied.

For safety reasons, it depends on the speed.

To maintain a certain distance, the system automatically decelerates, applies the brakes lightly, or accelerates again if the vehicle ahead begins moving faster.

If the vehicle ahead of you brakes to a halt, the system is able to detect this within the given system limits. If the vehicle ahead of your drives away again from a halt, your vehicle is able to accelerate if operated accordingly.

Even if some time passes before the vehicle drives away again, the BMW can still be accelerated automatically and simply.

As soon as the road is clear, it accelerates to the desired speed.

The speed is also maintained on downhill gradients, but may not be maintained on uphill slopes if engine power is insufficient.

Buttons at a glance
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

text_image 3 2 1 SET RES 4 5 6

1 System on/off, interrupt
2 Resume speed
3 Store speed
4 Reduce distance
5 Store, maintain/change speed
6 Increase distance

Switching on/off and interrupting cruise control

Switching on

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on - 1

Press the button on the steering wheel.

The indicator lamps in the instrument cluster light up and the mark in the speedometer is set to the current speed.

Cruise control can be used.

Switching off

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching off - 1

Deactivated or interrupted system

If the system is deactivated or interrupted, actively intervene by braking and, if necessary, with evasive maneuvers; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring.

If switching off the system while stationary, press on the brake pedal at the same time.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching off - 2

Press the button.

▶ If active: press twice.
▶ If interrupted: press once.

The displays go out. The stored desired speed and distance are deleted.

Interrupting

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Interrupting - 1

When active, press the button.

If interrupting the system while stationary, press on the brake pedal at the same time.

The system is automatically interrupted if:

The brakes are applied.
The clutch pedal is depressed.
▶ Transmission position D is disengaged.
▷ DTC Dynamic Traction Control is activated or DSC is deactivated.
▷ DSC is actively controlling stability.
The safety belt and the driver's door are opened when the vehicle is standing.
The system has not detected objects for an extended period, e.g., on a road with very little traffic without road edge line markings.
▶ Radar sensor is soiled.

Maintaining/storing the speed

SET

Press the button.

When the system is switched on, the current speed is maintained and stored as the desired speed.

It is displayed in the speedometer and briefly displayed in the instrument cluster.

When cruise control is maintained or stored, DSC Dynamic Stability Control is switched on, if necessary.

Changing, maintaining, and storing the speed

The rocker switch can be pressed while the system is interrupted to maintain and store the current speed. DSC Dynamic Stability Control is switched on, if necessary.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing, maintaining, and storing the speed - 1

Adapting the desired speed

Adapt the desired speed to the road conditions and be ready to brake at all times; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing, maintaining, and storing the speed - 2

Speed differences

Great speed differences with vehicles driving ahead of you, e.g., when rapidly approaching a truck or when another vehicle swerves into your own lane, cannot be compensated for by the system.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing, maintaining, and storing the speed - 3

natural_image Diagram of a vehicle's rearview and side profile showing directional arrows (no text or symbols)

Press the rocker switch up or down repeatedly until the desired speed is set.

If active, the displayed speed is stored and the vehicle reaches the stored speed if the road is clear.

▶ Each time the rocker switch is pressed to the point of resistance, the desired speed increases or decreases by approx. 1 mph/1 km/h.
▶ Each time the rocker switch is pressed past the point of resistance, the desired speed increases or decreases by a maximum of 5 mph/10 km/h. Max. adjustable speed: 110 mph/180 km/h.

Hold the rocker switch in position to repeat the action.

Distance

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Distance - 1

Selecting a distance

Adjust the distance according to the traffic and weather conditions; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring. Maintain the prescribed safety distance.

Reduce distance

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Reduce distance - 1

Press the button repeatedly until the desired distance is set.

The selected distance, refer to page 109, is displayed in the instrument cluster.

Increase distance

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Increase distance - 1

Press the button repeatedly until the desired distance is set.

The selected distance, refer to page 109, is displayed in the instrument cluster.

Calling up the desired speed and distance

While driving

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - While driving - 1

Press the button with the system switched on.

In the following cases, the stored speed value is deleted and cannot be called up again:

▶ When the system is switched off.
▶ When the ignition is switched off.

While standing

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - While standing - 1

Before leaving the vehicle, secure it against rolling.

Before leaving the vehicle with the engine running, engage position P of the automatic transmission and apply the parking brake. Otherwise, the vehicle may begin to roll.

The system brought the vehicle to a complete standstill.

▷ Green mark in the speedometer during a brief idle phase:

The vehicle ahead of you drives away while the mark is green: your vehicle accelerates without anything having to be done.

▷ Switch to orange of the mark in the speedometer after approx. 2 sec.:

The vehicle ahead of you drives away, while the mark is orange: in order to accelerate, briefly press the gas pedal or press the RES button or SET button.

Rolling bars in the distance indicator mean that the vehicle ahead of you has driven off.

You actively braked your vehicle to a halt by pressing on the brake pedal and it is standing behind another vehicle:

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - While standing - 2

Press the button to call up a stored speed.

  1. Release the brake pedal.
  2. Press on the accelerator briefly, or press the RES button or the rocker switch when the vehicle ahead of you drives away.

Displays in the instrument cluster

Desired speed

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Desired speed - 1

The marking lights up in green: the system is active.
The marking lights up in orange: the system has been interrupted.

The marking does not light up: the system is switched off.

Brief status display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Brief status display - 1

Selected desired speed.

If --- appears briefly on the display for Check Control messages, it is possible that the system

requirements for operation are currently not met.

Distance to vehicle ahead of you

The selected distance to the vehicle driving ahead of you is shown.

Distance display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Distance display - 1

Distance 1

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Distance display - 2

Distance 2

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Distance display - 3

Distance 3

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Distance display - 4

Distance 4

This value is set after the system is switched on.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Distance display - 5

The system has been interrupted or distance control is deactivated because the accelerator is being pressed; a vehicle was not detected.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Distance display - 6

Distance control is deactivated because the accelerator is being pressed; a vehicle was detected.

Rolling bars: the detected vehicle has driven away.

Indicator/warning lamps

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 1

Personal responsibility

The indicator and warning lamps do not relieve the driver of the responsibility to adapt his or her desired driving speed and style to the traffic conditions.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 2

Depending on how the vehicle is equipped, the indicator lamp in the instrument cluster indicates whether the system is switched on.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 3

The vehicle symbol lights up in orange:

A vehicle has been detected ahead of you.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 4

The vehicle symbol flashes orange:

The conditions are not adequate for operating the system.

The system was deactivated but applies the brakes until you actively assume control by pressing on the brake pedal or accelerator.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator/warning lamps - 5

The vehicle symbol flashes red and an acoustic signal sounds:

You are requested to intervene by braking or making an evasive maneuver.

System limits

Speed range

Best results are achieved when using the system on well-developed roads and highways.

The desired speed can be selected between 20 mph/30 km/h to 110 mph/180 km/h.

The system can also be activated when stationary.

Comply with the legal speed limit in every situation when using the system.

Detection range

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Detection range - 1

natural_image Top-down view of four cars driving on a road with a shaded triangular area (no text or symbols)

The detection capacity of the system and the automatic braking capacity are limited.

Two-wheeled vehicles driving ahead of you for instance might not be detected.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Detection range - 2

Limited detection capacity

Because of the limits to the detection capacity, you should be alert at all times so that you can intervene actively, if necessary; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring.

Deceleration

The system does not decelerate when a stationary obstacle is located in the same lane, e.g., a vehicle at a red traffic light or at the end of traffic congestion.

The system also does not respond to:

▶ Pedestrians or similarly slow road users.
▶ Red traffic lights.
▶ Stationary objects.
▶ Cross traffic.
Approaching traffic.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Deceleration - 1

No warnings

A warning may not be issued when approaching a stationary or very slow-moving obstacle. You must react yourself; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring.

Swerving vehicles

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Swerving vehicles - 1

natural_image Top-down diagram of three cars driving on a road with an arrow indicating direction (no text or symbols)

A vehicle driving in front of you is not detected until it is completely within the same lane as your vehicle.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Swerving vehicles - 2

Swerving vehicles

If a vehicle driving ahead of you suddenly swerves into your lane, the system may not be able to automatically restore the selected distance. This also applies to major speed differ-

ences to vehicles driving ahead of you, e.g., when rapidly approaching a truck. When a vehicle driving ahead of you is reliably detected, the system requests that the driver intervene by braking and carrying out evasive maneuvers, if necessary. You must react yourself; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring.

Unexpected lane change

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Unexpected lane change - 1

natural_image Diagram showing a multi-lane road with cars and a traffic light, no text or symbols present

If a vehicle ahead of you unexpectedly moves into another lane from behind a stopped vehicle, you yourself must react, as the system does not react to stopped vehicles.

Cornering

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Cornering - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a curved road with two cars driving, no text or symbols visible

If the desired speed is too high for a curve, the speed is reduced slightly in the curve, although curves cannot be anticipated in advance. Therefore, drive into a curve at an appropriate speed. In tight curves, situations may result due to the restricted detection range of the system in which a vehicle driving ahead of you may not be detected at all, or not until after a considerable delay.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Cornering - 2

natural_image Top-down view of a multi-lane road with two cars driving, one moving toward the center and another falling (no text or symbols)

When approaching a curve, the system may react briefly to the vehicles in the next lane due to the bend of the curve. Any deceleration of the vehicle by the system can be compensated for by briefly accelerating. After the accelerator pedal is released, the system becomes active again and independently controls the speed.

Driving away

In some situations, the vehicle cannot drive away automatically, e.g., on steep inclines or behind bumps in the road.

Radar sensor

Position

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Position - 1

natural_image Close-up of a car's front bumper with a black rectangular patch and an upward arrow pointing to it (no text or symbols visible)

Radar sensor

Dirty or covered sensor

A dirty or covered sensor may hinder the detection of vehicles.

▶ If necessary, clean the radar sensor. Remove layers of snow and ice carefully.
Do not cover the view field of the radar sensor.

Malfunction

The system cannot be activated if the sensor is not aligned correctly. This may be caused by damage incurred during parking, for example.

A Check Control message is displayed if the system fails.

For US owners only

The transmitter and receiver units comply with part 15 of the FCC/Federal Communication Commission regulations. Operation is governed by the following:

FCC ID:

▷ OAYARS3-A

Compliance statement:

This device complies with part 15 of the FCC Rules. Operation is subject to the following two conditions:

This device may not cause harmful interference, and
this device must accept any interference received, including interference that may cause undesired operation.

Any unauthorized modifications or changes to these devices could void the user's authority to operate this equipment.

Note

To reduce electromagnetic effects, please use properly.

The standard SAR value is 2.0 W/kg; the tested value of this product is 0.751 W/kg.

NCC declaration:

  1. Companies or persons without authorization should not change the frequency, increase the power, or change the characteristics or functions of the original design of low-power radio frequency devices with type approval.
  2. Low-power radio frequency devices should not impair legal communication or flight safety. If this type of impairment is detected,

the device should be switched off immediately. In this case, please contact the manufacturer and only use the product after the problem has been corrected.

  1. The "legal communication" specified above refers to communication in accordance with telecommunication regulations. Low-power devices should withstand interference from legal communication and ISM devices.

Collision warning with braking function

The concept

The system issues a two-phase warning of a danger of collision at speeds above approx.

10 mph/15 km/h. The time of these warnings may vary depending on the current driving situation.

The collision warning is available even if cruise control has been deactivated.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

natural_image Top-down view of four cars driving on a road with a shaded lane (no text or symbols)

It responds to stationary or moving objects that are within the detection range of the radar system.

When the vehicle is intentionally brought into contact with a vehicle, the collision warning is delayed to avoid false warnings.

Warning stages

Prewarning

This warning is issued, for example, when there is the impending danger of a collision or the distance to the vehicle ahead is too small.

Acute warning with braking function

Warning of the imminent danger of a collision when the vehicle approaches another object at a relatively high differential speed.

The acute warning prompts the driver to intervene and, if there is the danger of a collision, is accompanied by a braking intervention.

The braking intervention is executed with limited braking force and for a brief period only. The intervention cannot bring the vehicle to a complete standstill.

The braking intervention is executed only if DSC Dynamic Stability Control, refer to page 98, is switched on.

Adapting your speed and driving style The auto warning does not relieve the

The acute warning does not relieve the driver of the responsibility to adapt his or her driving speed and style to the traffic conditions.

The braking intervention can be interrupted by pressing on the accelerator or by actively moving the steering wheel.

When towing or tow-starting the vehicle, switch off the collision warning with braking function to prevent undesired interventions.

The braking function is deactivated if the DSC Dynamic Stability Control or DTC Dynamic Traction Control is deactivated.

Switching the warning function on/off

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching the warning function on/off - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with six function icons on the left (no text or labels visible)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching the warning function on/off - 2

Press the button

On: the LED lights up.

▶ Off: the LED goes out.

The state is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Configuring the prewarning

After the warning function is switched on, the following can be set via the iDrive:

The prewarning can be switched on/off.
The time of the prewarning can be set.

These settings have no effect on the time of the warning from the Active Cruise Control that prompts the driver to intervene or brake.

Display in the instrument cluster

The collision warning can be issued in the instrument cluster, in the Head-up Display, and acoustically.

Warning stages

Symbol Measure

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Measure - 1

The vehicle lights up in red: prewarning.

Increase distance.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Measure - 2

The vehicle flashes red and an acoustic signal sounds: acute warning.

You are requested to intervene by braking or making an evasive maneuver.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Measure - 3

Adapting your speed and driving style

The display does not relieve the driver of the responsibility to adapt his or her driving speed and style to the traffic conditions.

System limits

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 1

Be alert

Due to system limitations, warnings may be not be issued at all, or may be issued late or improperly. Therefore, always be alert and ready

to intervene; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring.

Detection range

This may result in the warning not being issued or being issued late.

For example, the following situations may not be detected:

▶ Slow moving vehicles when you approach them at high speed.
▶ Vehicles that suddenly swerve in front of you or sharply decelerating vehicles.
▶ Vehicles with an unusual rear appearance.
▶ Two-wheeled vehicles ahead of you.

Functional limitations

The system may not be fully functional in the following situations:

In heavy fog, rain, sprayed water or snowfall.
In tight curves.

Prewarning sensitivity

Each time after the prewarning time is set, this may result in increased false warnings.

Cruise control

The concept

The system is functional at speeds beginning at approx. 20 mph/30 km/h.

It maintains the speed that was set using the control elements on the steering wheel.

The system brakes on downhill gradients if engine braking action is insufficient.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

Unfavorable conditions

Do not use the system if unfavorable conditions make it impossible to drive at a constant speed, for instance:

On curvy roads.
In heavy traffic.

On slippery roads, in fog, snow or rain, or on a loose road surface.

Otherwise, you could lose control of the vehicle and cause an accident.

Controls

At a glance

Switching on

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on - 1

Press the button on the steering wheel.

The marking in the speedometer is set to the current speed.

Cruise control can be used.

Switching off

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching off - 1

Deactivated or interrupted system

If the system is deactivated or interrupted, actively intervene by braking and, if necessary, with evasive maneuvers; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching off - 2

Press the button.

▶ If active: press twice.

▶ If interrupted: press once.

The displays go out. The stored desired speed is deleted.

Interrupting

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Interrupting - 1

When active, press the button.

The system is automatically interrupted if:

The brakes are applied.

The clutch pedal is depressed.

▶ Transmission position D is disengaged.

▷ DTC Dynamic Traction Control is activated or DSC is deactivated.

▶ DSC is actively controlling stability.

▷ HDC is activated.

Maintaining/storing the current speed

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Maintaining/storing the current speed - 1

natural_image Diagram of a vehicle's rearview and side view showing directional arrows indicating movement or force (no text or symbols present)

Press the rocker switch while the system is interrupted.

When the system is switched on, the current speed is maintained and stored as the desired speed.

It is displayed in the speedometer and briefly displayed in the instrument cluster, Displays in the speedometer, refer to page 115.

When cruise control is maintained or stored, DSC Dynamic Stability Control is switched on, if necessary.

Change, maintain speed

The rocker switch can be pressed while interrupted to maintain and store the current speed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Change, maintain speed - 1

Adapting the desired speed

Adapt the desired speed to the road conditions and be ready to brake at all times; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Change, maintain speed - 2

natural_image Diagram of a vehicle's rearview and side profile with directional arrows indicating movement or force (no text or symbols)

Press the rocker switch up or down repeatedly until the desired speed is set.

If active, the displayed speed is stored and the vehicle reaches the stored speed if the road is clear.

▶ Each time the rocker switch is pressed to the point of resistance, the desired speed increases or decreases by approx. 1 mph/1 km/h.
▶ Each time the rocker switch is pressed past the point of resistance, the desired speed increases or decreases by a maximum of 5 mph/10 km/h.
▶ Pressing the rocker switch to the resistance point and holding it accelerates or decelerates the vehicle without requiring pressure on the accelerator. After the rocker switch is released, the vehicle maintains its final speed. Pressing the switch beyond the resistance point causes the vehicle to accelerate more rapidly.

Resuming the desired speed

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Resuming the desired speed - 1

Press the button.

The stored speed is reached and maintained.

Displays in the instrument cluster

Indicator lamp

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Indicator lamp - 1

Depending on how the vehicle is equipped, the indicator lamp in the instrument cluster indicates whether the system is ed on.

Desired speed

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Desired speed - 1

The marking lights up in green: the system is active.
The marking lights up in orange: the system has been interrupted.

The marking does not light up: the system is switched off.

Brief status display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Brief status display - 1

Selected desired speed.

If --- appears briefly on the display for Check Control messages, it is possible that the system requirements for operation are currently not met.

PDC Park Distance Control

The concept

In addition to the PDC Park Distance Control, the backup camera, refer to page 118, can be switched on.

PDC supports you when parking. Objects that you are approaching slowly in front of or behind your vehicle are indicated with:

▷ Signal tones.
▷ Visual display.

Measurement

Measurements are made by ultrasound sensors in the bumpers.

The range is approx. 6 ft/2 m.

An acoustic warning is first given:

By the front sensors and the two rear corner sensors at approx. 24 in/60 cm.
By the rear middle sensors at approx. 5 ft/1.50 m.

System limits

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 1

Check the traffic situation as well

PDC cannot serve as a substitute for the driver's personal judgment of the traffic situation. Check the traffic situation around the vehicle with your own eyes. Otherwise, an accident could result from road users or objects located outside of the PDC detection range.

Loud noises from outside and inside the vehicle may prevent you from hearing the PDC's signal tone.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 2

Avoid driving quickly with PDC

Avoid approaching an object quickly.

Avoid driving away quickly while PDC is not yet active.

For technical reasons, the system may otherwise be too late in issuing a warning.

Limits of ultrasonic measurement

The detection of objects can reach the physical limits of ultrasonic measurement, e.g.:

▶ With tow bars and trailer hitches.
▶ With thin or wedge-shaped objects.
With low objects.
▶ With objects with corners and sharp edges.

Low objects already displayed, e.g., curbs, can move into the blind area of the sensors before or after a continuous tone sounds.

High, protruding objects such as ledges may not be detected.

False warnings

PDC may issue a warning under the following conditions even though there is no obstacle within the detection range:

In heavy rain.
▶ When sensors are very dirty or covered in ice.
▶ When sensors are covered in snow.
On rough road surfaces.
In large buildings with right angles and smooth walls, e.g., in underground garages.
In heavy exhaust.
Due to other ultrasound sources, e.g., sweeping machines, high pressure steam cleaners or neon lights.

Switching on automatically

Select transmission position R with the engine running.

Switching off automatically

The system switches off and the LED goes out:

▶ After approx. 160 ft/50 m when driving forward.
▶ Above approx. 22 mph/36 km/h when driving forward.

Switch on the system again if necessary.

Switching on/off manually

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off manually - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with control panels and a rotary dial (no text or symbols visible)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off manually - 2

Press the button.

On: the LED lights up.
▶ Off: the LED goes out.

Signal tones

When approaching an object, an intermittent tone is sounded that indicates the position of the object. For example, if an object is detected to the left rear of the vehicle, a signal tone sounds from the left rear speaker.

The shorter the distance to the object becomes, the shorter the intervals.

If the distance to a detected object is less than approx. 12 in/30 cm, a continuous tone is sounded.

If objects are located both in front of and behind the vehicle, an alternating continuous signal is sounded.

The intermittent tone is interrupted after approx. 3 seconds:

▶ If the vehicle stops in front of an object that is detected by only one of the corner sensors.
▶ If moving parallel to a wall.
The signal tone is switched off:
▶ When the vehicle moves away from an object by more than approx. 4 in/10 cm.
▶ When transmission position P is engaged.

Volume

You can set the volume of the PDC signal tone, refer to page 177.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Visual warning

The approach of the vehicle to an object can be shown on the Control Display. Objects that are farther away are displayed on the Control Display before a signal tone sounds.

A display appears as soon as Park Distance Control (PDC) is activated.

If the backup camera image was selected last, it again appears on the display. To switch to PDC:

  1. "Rear view camera" Select the symbol on the Control Display.

  2. Press the controller.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Zoom view

On the left part of the display screen, the vehicle is shown enlarged.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Zoom view - 1

natural_image 3D rendered illustration of a conical object with layered shading (no text or symbols)

▶ Forward gear or transmission position D engaged: front area of the vehicle.
▶ Reverse gear or transmission position R engaged: rear area of the vehicle.

Display on the Control Display

Switching on the backup camera via the iDrive

With PDC activated:

R "Rear view camera"

The backup camera image is displayed. The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Malfunction

A Check Control message is displayed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Malfunction - 1

natural_image Close-up of a metallic object with diagonal striped pattern, possibly a lampshade or container (no text or symbols visible)

On the Control Display, the areas in front of and behind the vehicle are shaded. PDC has failed. Have the system checked.

To ensure full operability:

▷ Keep the sensors clean and free of ice.

When using a pressure washer, keep the sprayer moving and maintain a distance of at least 12 in/30 cm from the sensors.

Surround View

The concept

Surround View includes the following systems:

▶ Backup camera, refer to page 118.
▶ Side View, refer to page 122.
▶ Top View, refer to page 120.

It assists the driver when parking, maneuvering and on blind driveways and intersections.

Backup camera

The concept

The backup camera provides assistance in parking and maneuvering backwards. The area behind the vehicle is shown on the Control Display.

System limits

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 1

Check the traffic situation as well

Check the traffic situation around the ve-

hicle with your own eyes. Otherwise, an accident could result from road users or objects located outside the picture area of the backup camera.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 2

Detection of objects

High, protruding objects such as ledges

may not be detected by the backup camera.

Switching on automatically

Select transmission position R with the engine running.

The backup camera image is displayed if the system was switched on via the iDrive.

Automatic deactivation during forward travel

The system switches off when a certain driving distance or speed is exceeded.

Switch the system back on if necessary.

Switching on/off manually

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off manually - 1

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle dashboard with control panels and a rotary dial (no text or symbols visible)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off manually - 2

Press the button.

On: the LED lights up.
▶ Off: the LED goes out.

The PDC is shown on the Control Display.

Switch on the backup camera via the iDrive, refer to page 120.

Assistance functions

Functional requirement

The backup camera is switched on.
The trunk lid is fully closed.

Pathway lines

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pathway lines - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a geometric grid pattern with parallel lines, no text or symbols present

▶ Can be shown in the backup camera image when in transmission position R.

▶ Help you to estimate the space required when parking and maneuvering on level roads.
Are dependent on the current steering angle and are continuously adjusted to the steering wheel movements.

Show the parking aid lines, refer to page 119.

Turning circle lines
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pathway lines - 2

natural_image Exterior view of a road with two parallel curved lines forming an X shape (no text or symbols)

▶ Can be shown in the backup camera image.
▶ Show the course of the smallest possible turning circle on a level road.
▶ Only one turning circle line is displayed when the steering wheel is turned.

Show the parking aid lines, refer to page 119.

Parking using pathway and turning circle lines

  1. Position the vehicle so that the turning circle lines lead to within the limits of the parking space.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Parking using pathway and turning circle lines - 1

natural_image Exterior view of a modern building facade with diagonal grid lines and horizontal white stripes (no signage or text)
  1. Turn the steering wheel to the point where the pathway line covers the corresponding turning circle line.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Parking using pathway and turning circle lines - 2

natural_image Abstract geometric pattern with curved and grid lines, no text or symbols present

Obstacle marking
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Parking using pathway and turning circle lines - 3

natural_image 3D rendering of a curved wall with a vertical rod and a triangular base, showing grid pattern (no text or symbols)

▶ Spatially-shaped markings can be shown in the backup camera image.

Their colored steps match the markings of the PDC. This simplifies estimation of the distance to the object shown.

Activating the assistance functions

More than one assistance function can be active at the same time.

Showing the parking aid lines

"Parking aid lines"

Pathway and turning circle lines are displayed.

Showing the obstacle marking

P_1 "Obstacle marking"

Spatially-shaped markings are displayed.

Display on the Control Display

Switching on the backup camera via iDrive

With PDC activated:

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on the backup camera via iDrive - 1

"Rear view camera"

The backup camera image is displayed. The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Brightness

With the backup camera switched on:

  1. ☀️ Select the symbol.

  2. Turn the controller until the desired setting is reached and press the controller.

Contrast

With the backup camera switched on:

  1. Select the symbol.

  2. Turn the controller until the desired setting is reached and press the controller.

Camera
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Contrast - 1

natural_image Close-up of a car's rear window with a circular eye indicator and arrow pointing to the eye area (no text or symbols)

The camera lens is located under the BMW emblem of the trunk lid. The image quality may be impaired by dirt.

Clean the lens, refer to page 276.

Top View

The concept

Top View assists you in parking and maneuvering. The area around the doors and the road area around the vehicle are shown on the Control Display for this purpose.

Capturing the image

The image is captured by two cameras integrated in the exterior mirrors and by the backup camera.

The range equals:

Approx. 7 ft/2 m to the side.

▷ approx. 7 ft/2 m to the rear.

In this way, obstacles up to the height of the exterior mirrors are detected early.

System limits

Top View cannot be used in the following situations:

▶ With a door open.

▶ With the trunk lid open.

▶ With an exterior mirror folded in.

▷ In poor light.

A Check Control message is displayed in some of these situations.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 1

Check the traffic situation as well

Check the traffic situation around the vehicle with your own eyes. Otherwise, an accident could result from road users or objects located outside the picture area of the cameras.

Switching on automatically

Select transmission position R with the engine running.

The Top View and PDC images are displayed if the system is switched on via iDrive.

Automatic deactivation during forward travel

The system switches off when a certain driving distance or speed is exceeded.

Switch the system back on if necessary.

Switching on/off manually

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off manually - 1

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle dashboard with control panels and a rotary dial (no text or symbols visible)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off manually - 2

Press the button.

On: the LED lights up.

▶ Off: the LED goes out.

If Top View is displayed, switch on the backup camera via the iDrive, refer to page 121.

Visual warning

The approach of the vehicle to an object can be shown on the Control Display.

When the distance to an object is small, a red bar is shown in front of the vehicle, as it is in the PDC display.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Visual warning - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car parked in a narrow parking lot with no visible text or symbols

The display appears as soon as Top View is activated.

If the backup camera image was selected last, it again appears on the display. To switch to Top View:

"Rear view camera" Select the symbol on the Control Display.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Display on the Control Display

Switching on the backup camera via iDrive

With Top View switched on:

"Rear view camera"

The backup camera image is displayed. The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Brightness

With Top View switched on:

  1. "Brightness"

  2. Turn the controller until the desired setting is reached and press the controller.

Contrast

With Top View switched on:

  1. Ⓞ "Contrast"

  2. Turn the controller until the desired setting is reached and press the controller.

Displaying the turning circle and pathway lines

The static, red turning circle line shows the space needed to the side of the vehicle when the steering wheel is turned all the way.

The variable, green pathway line assists you in assessing the amount of space actually needed to the side of the vehicle.

The pathway line is dependent on the current steering angle and is continuously adjusted with the steering wheel movement.

"Parking aid lines"

Turning circle and pathway lines are displayed.

Cameras
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displaying the turning circle and pathway lines - 1

natural_image Side view of a car's front window with a white arrow pointing to the side panel (no text or symbols visible)

The objectives of the Top View cameras are located at the bottom of the exterior mirror housings. The image quality may be impaired by dirt. Clean the lens, refer to page 276.

Side View

The concept

Side View provides an early look at cross traffic at blind driveways and intersections. Road users concealed by obstacles to the left and right of the vehicle can only be detected relatively late from the driver's seat. To improve visibility, two cameras in the front of the vehicle record the traffic situation on each side.

System limits

The cameras capture a maximum range of 330 ft/100 m.

Display

The images from both cameras are shown simultaneously on the Control Display.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display - 1

Check the traffic situation as well

Check the traffic situation around the vehicle on blind driveways and intersections with your own eyes. Otherwise, an accident could result from road users or objects located outside the picture area of the Side View cameras.

Switching on/off
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display - 2

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle dashboard with control panels and a rotary dial (no text or symbols visible)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display - 3

Press the button.

Automatic deactivation during forward travel

The system switches off when a certain driving distance or speed is exceeded.

Switch the system back on if necessary.

Display on the Control Display

The traffic area to the left and right is displayed on the Control Display.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display on the Control Display - 1

natural_image Diagram showing two cars facing a road with a central vehicle and a magnified inset of the car (no text or symbols)

Guidelines at the bottom of the image show the position of the front of the vehicle.

Brightness

With the Side View switched on:

  1. "Brightness"

  2. Turn the controller until the desired setting is reached and press the controller.

Contrast

With the Side View switched on:

  1. "Contrast"

  2. Turn the controller until the desired setting is reached and press the controller.

Cameras

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Cameras - 1

natural_image Side view of a car with a tire and arrow pointing to a small black dot (no text or symbols)

The two camera lenses are located on the sides of the bumper.

The image quality may be impaired by dirt.

Clean the lens, refer to page 276.

Parking assistant

The concept

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

natural_image Top-down diagram of a road with cars and a curved arrow indicating direction (no text or symbols)

This system assists the driver in parking parallel to the road.

Ultrasound sensors measure parking spaces on both sides of the vehicle.

The parking assistant calculates the best possible parking line and takes control of steering during the parking procedure.

When parking, also take note of the visual and acoustic information issued by the PDC and the parking assistant and accelerate or brake accordingly.

A component of the parking assistant is the PDC Park Distance Control, refer to page 115.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 2

Personal responsibility

The parking assistant does not relieve the driver of responsibility for the vehicle during the parking procedure.

Watch the parking space and parking procedure closely and intervene if necessary; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident.

Requirements

For measuring parking spaces

▶ Maximum speed while driving forward approx. 22 mph/35 km/h.

▶ Maximum distance to row of parked vehicles: 5 ft/1.5 m.

Suitable parking space

▷ Gap between two objects with a minimum length of approx. 5 ft/1.5 m.

▶ Minimum length: own vehicle length plus approx. 4 ft/1.2 m.

▶ Minimum depth: approx. 5 ft/1.5 m.

For parking procedure

Closed doors.

Switching on

Using the button

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Using the button - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with control panel and steering wheel (no text or symbols visible)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Using the button - 2

Press the button.

The LED lights up.

The current status of the parking space search is indicated on the Control Display.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Using the button - 3

Parking assistant is activated automatically.

By engaging reverse

Engage transmission position R.

The current status of the parking space search is indicated on the Control Display.

Activate: "Parking Assistant" Select the symbol in the Control Display.

Display on the Control Display

System status

Symbol Meaning

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 1

Gray: the system is not available.

White: the system is available but not activated.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 2

The system is activated.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 3

natural_image Top-down view of a car with directional arrows indicating movement or change, no text or symbols present.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 4

Gray: the system is not activated. Parking space search.

Blue: the system is activated. A suitable parking space was found.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 5

The parking procedure is active. Steering control has been seized.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Status of the parking space search - 1

text_image Diagram showing a car with directional arrows labeled 1 and 2 pointing to its rear, indicating vehicle movement or traffic flow.

Gray, arrow 1: parking space search.
▶ Blue, arrow 2: parking space is suitable.

The vehicle is parked in the parking space if the parking procedure is active.

▶ No display: no parking space search.

Parking using the parking assistant

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Parking using the parking assistant - 1

Personal responsibility

The parking assistant does not relieve the driver of responsibility for the vehicle during the parking procedure.

Watch the parking space and parking procedure closely and intervene if necessary; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Parking using the parking assistant - 2

Check the traffic situation as well

Loud sounds outside and within the vehicle can drown out the signal tones of the parking assistant and PDC.

Check the traffic situation around the vehicle with your own eyes; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident.

  1. Switch on the parking assistant and activate it if necessary.
    The status of the parking space search is indicated on the Control Display.
  2. Follow the instructions on the Control Display.
    The end of the parking procedure is indicated on the Control Display.
  3. Adjust the parking position yourself if necessary.

Notes

The parking assistant takes control of steering for as long as the symbol for active parking appears on the display.
The system maneuvers the vehicle to position it properly in smaller parking spaces, for example.
To achieve the best possible parking position, wait for the automatic steering wheel movement after the gear change when the vehicle is stationary.
When parking in parking spaces on the driver's side, the corresponding turn signal must be set.

Interrupting manually

The parking assistant can be interrupted at any time by:

- Grasping the steering wheel and steering yourself.

▶ "Parking Assistant" Select the symbol on the Control Display.

Interrupting automatically

The procedure is interrupted automatically:

▶ If the vehicle speed exceeds approx. 6 mph/10 km/h.
On snow-covered or slippery road surfaces if necessary.
▶ If doors are open.

A Check Control message is displayed.

Continuing

An interrupted parking procedure can be continued if necessary.

Follow the instructions on the Control Display to do this.

Switching off

The system can be deactivated as follows:

▶ Press the button.

▶ Switch off the ignition.

Malfunction

A Check Control message is displayed.

The parking assistant failed. Have the system checked.

System limits

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 1

Changes to the parking space

Changes to the parking space after it was measured are not taken into account by the system.

Therefore, always be alert and ready to intervene; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 2

Transporting loads

Loads that extend beyond the perimeter of the vehicle are not taken into account by the system during the parking procedure.

Therefore, always be alert and ready to intervene; otherwise, there is the danger of an accident occurring.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - System limits - 3

Curbs

The parking assistant may steer the vehicle over or onto curbs.

Therefore, always be alert and ready to intervene; otherwise, the wheels, tires, or the vehicle may become damaged.

No parking assistance

The parking assistant does not provide assistance in parking.

In tight curves.

Functional limitations

The system may not be fully functional in the following situations:

▶ When sensors are dirty or iced over.
▶ In heavy fog, rain or snowfall.
On bumpy road surfaces such as gravel roads.
▶ When leaves or snow has collected in the parking space.

Limits of ultrasonic measurement

The detection of objects can reach the physical limits of ultrasonic measurement, e.g.:

▶ With tow bars and trailer hitches.
▶ With thin or wedge-shaped objects.
▶ With elevated, protruding objects such as ledges or cargo.
▶ With objects with corners and sharp edges.
▶ With objects with a fine surface structure, such as fences.

The parking assistant may identify parking spaces that are not suitable for parking.

Ultrasound sensors

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Ultrasound sensors - 1

natural_image Close-up of a car's side panel with a pointing arrow and a small black object on the door (no text or symbols visible)

The ultrasounds sensors used to measure parking spaces are located in the side turn signals.

To ensure full operability:

Keep the sensors clean and free of ice.
When using high-pressure washers, do not spray the sensors for long periods and maintain a distance of at least 12 in/30 cm.

Night Vision with pedestrian detection

The concept

Night Vision with pedestrian detection is a night vision system.

An infrared camera records the area in front of the vehicle and displays the image on the Control Display.

The picture is a heat image. The system has an integrated pedestrian detection function that detects pedestrians and cyclists. Warm objects that are similar in shape to human beings are detected by the system.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

Personal responsibility

Night Vision cannot replace the driver's personal judgment of the visibility conditions and the traffic situation. The view ahead and the actual visibility conditions must always be the basis on which the vehicle speed is adjusted; otherwise, there is a risk to road safety.

Heat image

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Heat image - 1

natural_image Silhouette of a herd of animals walking along a path with trees in the background (no text or symbols)

The image shows the heat radiated by objects in the field of view of the camera.

Warm objects have a light appearance and cold objects, a dark appearance.

The ability to detect an object depends on the temperature difference between the object and the background and on the level of heat radiation emitted by the object. Objects that are similar in temperature to the environment or that radiate very little heat are difficult to detect.

For safety reasons, when driving at speeds above approx. 3 mph/5 km/h and in low ambient light, the image is only displayed when the low beams are switched on.

A still image is displayed at regular intervals for a fraction of a second.

Pedestrian detection

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pedestrian detection - 1

natural_image Silhouette of a person standing on a road with a car, surrounded by trees and buildings (no text or symbols)

The pedestrian detection and warning system only operates in darkness and only when a heat image is displayed.

Warm objects that are similar in shape to human beings are detected by the system.

People detected by the system are displayed with a slight yellow hue.

Under good ambient conditions, the pedestrian detection system operates within a range of approx. 50 ft/15 m to approx. 330 ft/100 m.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pedestrian detection - 2

natural_image Grayscale illustration of a road with a person walking, trees, and a car in the background (no text or symbols)

Environmental influences can limit the availability of pedestrian detection.

If pedestrian detection is not available, a symbol is displayed in the heat image.

This symbol disappears when the function becomes available again.

Warning of people in danger

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Warning of people in danger - 1

natural_image Illustration of a road with two human figures and a warning sign, surrounded by trees (no text or symbols)

If the system detects a person in the defined area in front of the vehicle and if there is the danger of a collision with this person, a warning symbol appears in the Control Display and Head-up Display.

Although both the shape and the heat radiation are analyzed, false warnings cannot be ruled out.

Warning area in front of the vehicle

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Warning area in front of the vehicle - 1

text_image Diagram showing a car driving on a road with two directional arrows labeled 1 and 2 pointing to the lane.

The warning area in front of the vehicle is divided into two areas.

▶ Central area 1 directly in front of the vehicle.
▶ Expanded area 2 to the right and left.

The entire area moves along with the vehicle in the direction of the steering angle and changes with the vehicle speed. As the vehicle speed increases, the area becomes longer and wider, for example.

Prewarning

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Prewarning - 1

The yellow symbol is displayed when a person is detected in the central area, arrow 1, immediately in front of the ve-

hicle.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Prewarning - 2

The yellow symbol is displayed when a person detected in the extended area, arrow 2, is moving from the right or left

to the central area.

Acute warning

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Acute warning - 1

The red symbol is displayed and a signal sounds. You are requested to intervene immediately by braking or making an

evasive maneuver.

Display in the Head-up Display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display in the Head-up Display - 1

The warning is simultaneously displayed in the Head-up Display and in the

Control Display. The displayed symbol

can vary with the people detected. For people

located in the central area, the distance to the person is indicated by the size of the symbol.

System limits

Basic limits

System operation is limited in situations such as the following:

On steep hills, in steep depressions or in tight curves.
When the camera is dirty or the protective glass is damaged.
In heavy fog, rain or snowfall.
▶ At very high external temperatures.

Limits of pedestrian detection

Animals are not detected by the pedestrian detection function, even if they are clearly visible in the image.

Limited pedestrian detection:

When people are fully or partially covered, especially when their heads are covered.
When people are not in an upright position, e.g., when lying down.
▶ Cyclists on unconventional bicycles (e.g., recumbent bicycles).
▶ After physical damage to the system, e.g., after an accident.

Activation/deactivation

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activation/deactivation - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car's backrest with six directional icons on the left panel (no text or symbols)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activation/deactivation - 2

Press the button.

Display

Adjustments via the iDrive

With Night Vision switched on:

  1. Activate Night Vision with pedestrian detection.
  2. Press the controller.
  3. Open the desired menu item.

▶ "Brightness"
▶ "Contrast"
"Pedestrian detection"

The settings are stored for the remote control currently in use.

Camera

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Camera - 1

natural_image Close-up of a car's front grille with a white arrow pointing to a small object on the grille (no text or symbols visible)

Rain, dirt, snow, or ice can impair camera operation.

The camera is automatically heated when the external temperatures are low.

The camera is automatically cleaned together with the headlamps.

Clean the lens, refer to page 276.

Head-up Display

The concept

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

natural_image Close-up of a car's dashboard and steering wheel (no text or symbols visible)

This system projects important information into the driver's field of vision, e.g., the speed.

In this way, the driver can get information without averting his or her eyes from the road.

Display visibility

The visibility of the displays in the Head-up Display is influenced by:

▶ Certain sitting positions.
▶ Objects on the cover of the Head-up Display.
▷ Sunglasses with certain polarization filters.
▷ Wet roads.
▶ Unfavorable light conditions.

If the image is distorted, check the basic settings.

Switching on/off

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with six function buttons (no text or symbols visible)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching on/off - 2

Press the button.

Display

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Display - 1

text_image 3 2 1 35 30 mph 5 BAYSHORE BOULEVARD 800 ft 4

1 Lane departure warning
2 Active Cruise Control
3 Desired speed
4 Navigation system
5 Speed

The collision warning, Night Vision pedestrian warning, or Check Control messages are displayed briefly if needed.

Selecting displays in the Head-up Display

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Head-up display"
  3. "Displayed information"
  4. Select the desired displays in the Head-up Display.

The settings are stored for the remote control currently in use.

Setting the brightness

The brightness is automatically adjusted to the ambient light.

The basic setting can be adjusted manually.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Head-up display"
  3. "Brightness"
  4. Turn the controller.

The brightness is adjusted.

When the low beams are switched on, the brightness of the Head-up Display can be addi-

tionally influenced using the instrument lighting, refer to page 84.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Adjusting the height

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Head-up display"
  3. "Height"
  4. Turn the controller.

The height is adjusted.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Special windshield

The windshield is part of the system.

The shape of the windshield makes it possible to display a precise image.

A film in the windshield prevents double images from being displayed.

Therefore, have the special windshield replaced by a service center only.

Climate control

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment

is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e. g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Automatic climate control
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 1

text_image 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 AUTO MAX AUTO ALL A 19 18 17 16 15 14 13 12

1 Air distribution, left
2 Temperature, left
3 AUTO program, left
4 Air volume, AUTO intensity, residual heat, left
5 Remove ice and condensation
6 Maximum cooling
7 Display
8 Air volume, AUTO intensity, right
9 AUTO program, right
10 Temperature, right

11 Air distribution, right
12 Seat heating, right 47
13 Active seat ventilation, right 47
14 Automatic recirculated-air control/recirculated-air mode
15 Cooling function
16 Rear window defroster
17 ALL program
18 Active seat ventilation, left 47
19 Seat heating, left 47

Climate control functions in detail

Note

iii is continuously shown on the display of the automatic climate control.

Manual air distribution

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Manual air distribution - 1

Press the button repeatedly to select a program:

▶ Upper body region.
▶ Upper body region and footwell.
▶ Footwell.
▶ Windows and footwell: driver's side only.
▶ Windows, upper body region and footwell: driver's side only.

If the windows are fogged over, press the AUTO button on the driver's side to utilize the condensation sensor.

Temperature

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Temperature - 1

Turn the wheel to set the desired temperature.

The automatic climate control achieves this temperature as quickly as possible, if necessary with the maximum cooling or heating capacity, and then keeps it constant.

Avoid rapidly switching between different temperature settings. The automatic climate control will not have sufficient time to adjust the set temperature.

AUTO program

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - AUTO program - 1

Press the button.

Air volume, air distribution, and tem-

perature are controlled automatically.

Depending on the selected temperature, AUTO intensity, and outside influences, the air is directed to the windshield, side windows, upper body, and into the footwell.

The cooling function, refer to page 133, is switched on automatically with the AUTO program.

At the same time, a condensation sensor controls the program so as to prevent window condensation as much as possible.

Intensity of the AUTO program

With the AUTO program switched on, automatic control of the air volume and air distribution can be adjusted.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Intensity of the AUTO program - 1

Press the left or right side of the button: decrease or increase the intensity.

The selected intensity is shown on the display of the automatic climate control.

Air volume, manual

To be able to manually adjust the air volume, switch off the AUTO program first.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Air volume, manual - 1

Press the left or right side of the button: decrease or increase air volume.

The selected air volume is shown on the display of the automatic climate control.

The air volume of the automatic climate control may be reduced automatically to save battery power.

Defrosting windows and removing condensation

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Defrosting windows and removing condensation - 1

Press the button.

Ice and condensation are quickly removed from the windshield and the front side windows.

The air volume can be adjusted when the program is active.

If the windows are fogged over, additionally switch on the cooling function or press the AUTO button to utilize the condensation sensor.

Maximum cooling

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Maximum cooling - 1

Press the button.

The system is set to the lowest temperature, maximum air volume and recirculated-air mode.

Air flows out of the vents for the upper body region. Open them for this purpose.

Air is cooled as quickly as possible:

At an external temperature of approx. 32 °F/0 °C.
▶ When the engine is running.

The air volume can be adjusted when the program is active.

Automatic recirculated-air control/recirculated-air mode

You can respond to unpleasant odors or pollutants in the immediate environment by temporarily suspending the supply of outside air. The system then recirculates the air currently within the vehicle.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic recirculated-air control/recirculated-air mode - 1

Press the button repeatedly to select an operating mode:

▶ LEDs off: outside air flows in continuously.
▶ Left LED on, automatic recirculated-air control: a sensor detects pollutants in the outside air and controls the shut-off automatically.
Right LED on, recirculated-air mode: the supply of outside air into the vehicle is permanently blocked.

If the windows are fogged over, switch off the recirculated-air mode and press the AUTO button on the driver's side to utilize the condensation sensor. Make sure that air can flow onto the windshield.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic recirculated-air control/recirculated-air mode - 2

Continuous recirculated-air mode

The recirculated-air mode should not be used for an extended period of time, as the air quality inside the vehicle deteriorates steadily.

Cooling function

The passenger compartment can only be cooled with the engine running.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Cooling function - 1

Press the button.

The air is cooled and dehumidified and – depending on the temperature setting – warmed again.

Depending on the weather, the windshield may fog up briefly when the engine is started.

The cooling function is switched on automatically with the AUTO program.

When using the automatic climate control, condensation water, refer to page 148, develops that exits underneath the vehicle.

Rear window defroster

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Rear window defroster - 1

Press the button.

The rear window defroster switches off automatically after a certain period of time.

ALL program

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - ALL program - 1

Press the button.

Current settings on the driver's side for the temperature, air volume, air distribution, and AUTO program are transferred to the front passenger side.

The program is switched off if the settings on the front passenger side are changed.

Residual heat

The heat stored in the engine is used to heat the interior.

Functional requirement

▶ Up to 20 minutes after the engine has been switched off.
▷ Warm engine.
The battery is sufficiently charged.
▶ External temperature below 77 °F/25 °C.

Switching on

  1. Switch off the ignition.

  2. The right side of the button on the driver's side.

iii is shown on the display of the automatic climate control.

The interior temperature, air volume and air distribution can be adjusted with the ignition switched on.

Switching off

At the lowest fan speed, press the left side of the button on the driver's side.

!!! on the display of the automatic climate control goes out.

Switching the system on/off

Switching off

▶ Complete system:

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching off - 1

At the lowest fan speed, press the left side of the button on the driver's

On the front passenger side:

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching off - 2

At the lowest fan speed, press the left side of the button on the front gper side.

Switching on

Press any button.

Microfilter/activated-charcoal filter

The microfilter removes dust and pollen from the incoming air.

The activated-charcoal filter removes gaseous pollutants from the outside air that enters the vehicle.

This combined filter should be replaced during scheduled maintenance, refer to page 260, of your vehicle.

Ventilation

Front ventilation

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Front ventilation - 1

text_image 2 2 1 3 3

▶ Thumbwheel to vary the temperature, arrow 1.

Toward blue: colder.

Toward red: warmer.

▶ Lever for changing the air flow direction, arrow 2.

▶ Thumbwheels for opening and closing the vents continuously, arrows 3.

Adjusting the ventilation

▶ Ventilation for cooling:

Adjust the vent to direct the air in your direction, e.g., if the vehicle interior is hot from the sun.

Draft-free ventilation:

Adjust the vent to let the air flow past you.

Parked-car ventilation

The concept

The parked-car ventilation ventilates the vehicle interior and lowers its temperature, if necessary.

The system can be switched on and off directly or by using two preset switch-on times. It remains switched on for 30 minutes.

They can be operated via iDrive.

Parked-car ventilation

Using the preset switch-on time or when operated directly: any external temperature.

Open the vents to allow air to flow out.

Switching on/off directly

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Climate"
  3. "Activate parked-car vent."

The symbol on the automatic climate control flashes if the system is switched on.

The system continues to run for some time after being switched off.

Preselecting the switch-on time

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Climate"
  3. "Timer 1:" or "Timer 2:"
  4. Set the desired time.

Activating the switch-on time

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Climate"
  3. "Activate Timer 1" or "Activate Timer 2"
    The symbol on the automatic climate control lights up when the switch-on time is activated.
    The symbol on the automatic climate control flashes when the system has been switched on.
    The system will only be switched on within the next 24 hours. After that, it needs to reactivated.

Interior equipment

Integrated universal remote control

The concept

This system can replace up to three different hand-held transmitters for various types of remote-controlled equipment, such as garage doors or lighting systems.

The hand-held transmitter signal can be programmed on one of the three memory buttons.

The corresponding device can then be operated using the programmed memory button.

The LED indicates that a signal is being transmitted.

When selling the vehicle, delete the stored programs for security reasons.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

During programming

During programming and before activating a device using the integrated universal remote control, ensure that there are no people, animals, or objects in the range of movement of the remote-controlled device; otherwise, there is a risk of injury or damage.

Also follow the safety instructions of the hand-held transmitter.

Compatibility

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Compatibility - 1

If this symbol is printed on the packaging or in the instructions of the hand-held transmitter, the remote-controlled device is generally compatible with the integrated universal remote control.

If you have any questions, please contact:

▶ Your service center.

▷ www.homelink.com on the Internet.

HomeLink is a registered trademark of Johnson Controls, Inc.

Programming

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Programming - 1

text_image 1 2

▷ LED, arrow 1.

▶ Memory buttons, arrow 2.

Fixed-code hand-held transmitters

  1. Switch on the ignition.

  2. Initial setup:

Press the two outer memory buttons 1 and 3 for approx. 20 seconds until the LED, arrow 1 flashes.

All programs of the three memory buttons, arrow 2, are cleared.

  1. Hold the hand-held transmitter a distance of approx. 1 to 3 in/2.5 to 8 cm from the memory buttons.

The required distance depends on the manual transmitter.

  1. Simultaneously press the transmit button of the hand-held transmitter and the memory button of the integrated universal remote control.

The LED flashes slowly.

  1. Release both buttons when the LED flashes rapidly.

If the LED does not flash rapidly after approx. 60 seconds, change the distance and repeat the step.

Canada: if the LED is not flashing rapidly after approx. 60 seconds, change the distance and repeat the step, or, if the programming

was interrupted by the hand-held transmitter, hold down the memory button and press and release the button on the hand-held transmitter again for 2 seconds.

  1. To program other hand-held transmitters, repeat steps 3 to 5.

The device can be operated using the memory button with the engine running or the ignition switched on.

Malfunction

If the device cannot be used after repeated attempts at programming, please check whether the hand-held transmitter is equipped with an alternating code system.

To do so:

Read the instructions of the hand-held transmitter.
Hold down the memory button of the integrated universal remote control longer.

If the LED of the integrated universal remote control flashes rapidly for a brief period and then lights up continuously, the hand-held transmitter is equipped with an alternating code system.

In this case, program the memory buttons as described under Alternating-code hand-held transmitters.

Alternating-code hand-held transmitters

Please obtain information on synchronizing the device in the operating manual of the device being set up.

Programming will be easier with the aid of a second person.

  1. Park the vehicle within range of the remote-controlled device.
  2. Program the integrated universal remote control as described above under Fixed-code hand-held transmitters.
  3. Locate the button on the receiver of the device to be set, e.g., on the drive.

  4. Press the button on the receiver of the device to be set. You have approx. 30 seconds for the next step.

  5. Hold down the programmed memory button of the integrated universal remote for approx. 3 seconds. Repeat this work step, if necessary, up to three times.

The device can be operated using the memory button with the engine running or the ignition switched on.

Reassigning individual programs

  1. Switch on the ignition.
  2. Hold the hand-held transmitter a distance of approx. 1 to 3 in/2.5 to 8 cm from the memory buttons.
    The required distance depends on the manual transmitter.
  3. Hold down the memory button of the integrated universal remote control.
  4. If the LED flashes slowly after approx. 20 seconds, press the transmit button on the hand-held transmitter.
  5. Release both buttons when the LED flashes rapidly.
    If the LED does not flash rapidly after approx. 60 seconds, change the distance and repeat the step.

Canada: if the LED is not flashing rapidly after approx. 60 seconds, change the distance and repeat the step, or, if the programming was interrupted by the hand-held transmitter, hold down the memory button and press and release the button on the hand-held transmitter again for 2 seconds.

Deleting all stored programs

Press the two outer memory buttons for approx. 20 seconds until the LED flashes rapidly.

All stored programs are deleted.

The programs cannot be deleted individually.

Ashtray/cigarette lighter

Manual-shift transmission: opening

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Manual-shift transmission: opening - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with a black gear shift and white downward arrow (no text or symbols)

Press on the cover.

Automatic transmission: opening

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic transmission: opening - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car gear shift lever with a white arrow pointing to the center (no text or symbols visible)

Press the button.

Emptying

Take out the insert.

Lighter

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Lighter - 1

Push in the lighter.

The lighter can be removed as soon as it pops back out.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Lighter - 2

Danger of burns

Only hold the hot lighter by its knob; otherwise, there is the danger of getting burned.

Switch off the ignition and take the remote control with you when leaving the vehicle so that children cannot use the lighter and burn themselves.

Connecting electrical devices

Sockets

The lighter socket can be used as a socket for electrical equipment while the engine is running or when the ignition is switched on. The total load of all sockets must not exceed 140 watts at 12 volts.

Do not damage the socket by using unsuitable connectors.

Manual transmission: center console

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Manual transmission: center console - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with a black play button and directional arrow (no text or symbols)

Press on the cover.

Remove the cover or cigarette lighter.

Automatic transmission: center console

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic transmission: center console - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with a black switch and directional arrow (no text or symbols)

Press the button.

Remove the cover or cigarette lighter.

In the front passenger footwell

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - In the front passenger footwell - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with air vent and control panel (no visible text or symbols)

Socket is located below the glove compartment. To access the socket: fold open the cover.

Center armrest

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Center armrest - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard showing the intake manifold and seatbelt (no text or symbols visible)

Cover.

Ski bag

Capacity

The ski bag makes it possible to transport two pairs of skis up to a length of 6 ft/2.10 m.

Preparing and loading the ski bag

  1. Pull the release in the direction of the arrow, and remove the insert from the front. If nec-

essary, when pulling the release, press against the insert.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Preparing and loading the ski bag - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car seatbelt with a black buckle and white arrow indicating the belt (no text or symbols)
  1. Lay out the ski bag.
  2. Press button in the cargo area, open tailboard and attach to the rear wall via magnetic holder.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Preparing and loading the ski bag - 2

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle showing a rectangular panel with three horizontal bars and directional arrows pointing to the side (no text or symbols)
  1. Load the ski bag. If necessary, wrap the sharp edges of the skis.
  2. Tighten the retaining strap.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Preparing and loading the ski bag - 3

natural_image Interior view of a car showing seatbelt buckle and seatbelt (no text or symbols visible)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Preparing and loading the ski bag - 4

Securing the ski bag

Secure the ski bag by tightening the retaining strap; otherwise, the contents could present a source of danger to the passengers, for example during braking or evasive maneuvers.

Stowing the ski bag

Proceed in the reverse order of loading.

When replacing the insert, place both pins into the rail at the bottom and press the insert back in place until a 'click' is heard. Ensure that the rear seat backrest upholstery is not damaged.

Storage compartments

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Storage compartments

The following storage compartments are available in the vehicle interior:

▶ Glove compartment on the front passenger side, refer to page 141.
Storage compartment on the center console: manual transmission.
Storage compartment in the center armrest, refer to page 142.
▶ Compartments in the doors.
▷ Pockets on the backrests of the front seats.
Net in the front passenger footwell.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storage compartments - 1

No loose objects in the passenger compartment

Do not stow any objects in the passenger compartment without securing them; otherwise, they may present a danger to occupants for instance during braking and avoidance maneuvers.

Glove compartment

Opening
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Glove compartment - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the backrest door with a white arrow pointing to the vent (no text or symbols visible)

Pull the handle.

The light in the glove compartment switches on.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Glove compartment - 2

Close the glove compartment again immediately

Close the glove compartment immediately after use while driving; otherwise, injury may occur during accidents.

Closing

Fold up the cover.

USB interface for data transfer
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Closing - 1

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle showing a door handle and rear panel with an arrow pointing to the door (no text or symbols visible)

Connection for importing and exporting data on USB devices, e.g.:

▶ Personal Profile settings, refer to page 31.

▶ Music collection, refer to page 194.

Observe the following when connecting:

Do not use force when plugging the connector into the USB interface.
Do not connect devices such as fans or lamps to the USB interface.
Do not connect USB hard drives.
Do not use the USB interface to recharge external devices.

Center armrest

Opening

A storage compartment is located in the center armrest between the front seats.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car seatbelt with directional arrows indicating movement (no text or symbols)

Press the buttons next to the lock.

Locking the storage compartment
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening - 2

natural_image Close-up of a car seatbelt buckle with a white arrow pointing to the side panel (no text or symbols visible)

The storage compartment in the armrest can be locked with an integrated key to separately secure the trunk lid, refer to page 38, for example.

After the storage compartment is locked, the remote control can be handed out without the integrated key, refer to page 30, for instance at a hotel.

This prevents access to the storage compartment and to the cargo area.

Connection for an external audio device

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Connection for an external audio device - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard showing the intake manifold and control panel (no text or symbols visible)

This can be used to connect an external audio device, such as an MP3 player.

▶ AUX-IN port, refer to page 199.
▶ USB audio interface, refer to page 199.

Cupholders

Notes

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 1

Shatter-proof containers and no hot drinks

Use light and shatter-proof containers and do not transport hot drinks. Otherwise, there is the increased danger of injury in an accident.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 2

Unsuitable containers

Do not forcefully push unsuitable containers into the cupholders. This may result in damage.

Manual transmission: center console

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Manual transmission: center console - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with gear shift and control panel (no text or symbols visible)

A cupholder is located on the center console.

Manual transmission: center armrest

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Manual transmission: center armrest - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car seatbelt with directional arrows indicating movement (no text or symbols)

A cupholder is located in the center armrest compartment.

To open: press the buttons next to the lock.

Automatic transmission: center console

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic transmission: center console - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with a black play button and white warning symbol (no text or labels)

To open: press on the cover.

Storage compartments in the cargo area

Net

Small objects can be stowed in the net on the rear cargo area trim.

Lashing eyes

To secure the cargo, refer to page 150, there are lashing eyes in the cargo area.

Storage compartment under the cargo floor cover

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storage compartment under the cargo floor cover - 1

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle showing a black panel with white arrows pointing to a car door (no text or symbols visible)

Raise the cargo floor cover using the strap.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storage compartment under the cargo floor cover - 2

text_image Online Edition for Part no. 01 40 2 607 971 - 09 11 490

Driving tips

This chapter provides you with information useful in dealing with specific driving and operating modes.

Things to remember when driving

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Breaking-in period

General information

Moving parts need to be broken in to adjust to each other.

The following instructions will help achieve a long vehicle life and good economy.

Engine and differential

Always obey the official speed limit.

Up to 1,200 miles/2,000 km

Do not exceed the maximum engine and road speed:

▶ For gasoline engine, 4,500 rpm and 100 mph/160 km/h.

Avoid full-throttle operation and use of the transmission's kickdown mode for the initial miles.

From 1,200 miles/2,000 km

The engine and vehicle speed can gradually be increased.

Tires

Due to technical factors associated with their manufacture, tires do not achieve their full traction potential until after an initial breaking-in period.

Drive conservatively for the first 200 miles/300 km.

Brake system

Brakes require an initial break-in period of approx. 300 miles/500 km to achieve optimized contact and wear patterns between brake pads and discs. Drive moderately during this break-in period.

Clutch

The function of the clutch reaches its optimal level only after a distance driven of approx. 300 miles/500 km. During this break-in period, engage the clutch gently.

Following part replacement

The same breaking in procedures should be observed if any of the components mentioned above have to be renewed in the course of the vehicle's operating life.

General driving notes

Closing the trunk lid

Drive with the trunk lid closed Only drive with the tailgate closed; otherwise, in the event of an accident or braking or evasive maneuvers, passengers or other road users may be injured or the vehicle may be damaged. In addition, exhaust fumes may enter the passenger compartment.

If driving with the tailgate open cannot be avoided:

▶ Close all windows and the glass sunroof.
▶ Greatly increase the blower speed.
▶ Drive moderately.

Hot exhaust system

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Hot exhaust system - 1

Hot exhaust system

High temperatures are generated in the exhaust system.

Do not remove the heat shields installed and never apply undercoating to them. When driving, standing at idle and while parking, take care to avoid possible contact between the hot exhaust system and any highly flammable materials such as hay, leaves, grass, etc. Such contact could lead to a fire, and with it the risk of serious personal injury as well as property damage.

Do not touch hot exhaust pipes; otherwise, there is the danger of getting burned.

Climate control windshield

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Climate control windshield - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car showing the rearview and side seats with an upward arrow indicating motion (no text or symbols)

The marked area is not covered with heat reflective coating.

Use this area for garage door openers, devices for electronic toll collection, etc.

Mobile communication devices in the vehicle

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Mobile communication devices in the vehicle - 1

Mobile communication devices in the vehicle

It is advised that you do not use mobile communication devices, e.g., mobile phones, inside the vehicle without connecting them directly to the external antenna. Otherwise, the vehicle electronics and mobile communication devices can interfere with each other. In addition, there is no assurance that the radiation generated during transmission will be discharged from the vehicle interior.

Hydroplaning

On wet or slushy roads, a wedge of water can form between the tires and road surface.

This phenomenon is referred to as hydroplaning. It is characterized by a partial or complete loss of contact between the tires and the road surface, ultimately undermining your ability to steer and brake the vehicle.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Hydroplaning - 1

Hydroplaning

When driving on wet or slushy roads, reduce your speed to prevent hydroplaning.

Driving through water

Drive though calm water only if it is not deeper than 9.8 inches/25 cm and at this height, no faster than walking speed, up to 6 mph/10 km/h.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Driving through water - 1

Adhere to water depth and speed limitations

Do not exceed this water depth and walking speed; otherwise, the vehicle's engine, the electrical systems and the transmission may be damaged.

Braking safely

Your vehicle is equipped with ABS as a standard feature.

Applying the brakes fully is the most effective way of braking in situations when this is necessary.

The vehicle maintains steering responsiveness. You can still avoid any obstacles with a minimum of steering effort.

Pulsation of the brake pedal and sounds from the hydraulic circuits indicate that ABS is in its active mode.

Objects in the area around the pedals

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Objects in the area around the pedals - 1

No objects in the area around the pedals

Keep floor mats, carpets, and any other objects out of the area of motion of the pedals; otherwise, the function of the pedals could be impeded while driving

Do not place additional floor mats over existing mats or other objects.

Only use floor mats that have been approved for the vehicle and can be properly fixed in place.

Ensure that the floor mats are securely fastened again after they were removed for cleaning, for example.

Driving in wet conditions

When roads are wet or there is heavy rain, briefly exert gentle pressure on the brake pedal every few miles.

Ensure that this action does not endanger other road users.

The heat generated in this process helps dry the brake discs and pads.

In this way braking efficiency will be available when you need it.

Hills

Drive long or steep downhill gradients in the gear in which the least braking is required. Otherwise, the brake system may overheat, resulting in a reduction in the brake system efficiency.

Manual transmission:

You can increase the engine's braking effect by shifting down, going all the way to first gear, if necessary.

Automatic transmission:

You can increase the engine's braking effect by shifting down in the manual mode of the automatic transmission, refer to page 66.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Hills - 1

Avoid load on the brakes

Avoid placing excessive load on the brake system. Light but consistent brake pressure can lead to high temperatures, brake wear and possibly even brake failure.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Hills - 2

Do not drive in neutral

Do not drive in neutral or with the engine stopped, as doing so disables engine braking. In addition, steering and brake assist is unavailable with the engine stopped.

Brake disc corrosion

Corrosion on the brake discs and contamination on the brake pads are furthered by:

▶ Low mileage.

▶ Extended periods when the vehicle is not used at all.

▶ Infrequent use of the brakes.

Corrosion occurs when the minimum pressure that must be exerted by the pads during brake applications to clean the discs is not reached.

Should corrosion form on the brake discs, the brakes will tend to respond with a pulsating effect that generally cannot be corrected.

Condensation under the parked vehicle

When using the automatic climate control, condensation water develops that exits underneath the vehicle.

Therefore, traces of condensed water under the vehicle are normal.

Loading

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Overloading the vehicle

To avoid exceeding the approved carrying capacity of the tires, never overload the vehicle. Overloading can lead to overheating and increases the rate at which damage develops inside the tires. This could result in a sudden loss of tire inflation pressure.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 2

No fluids in the trunk

Make sure that fluids do not leak into the trunk; otherwise, the vehicle may be damaged.

Determining the load limit

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Determining the load limit - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the side panel and seatbelt (no text or symbols visible)
  1. Locate the following statement on your vehicle's placard:

The combined weight of occupants and cargo should never exceed XXX kg or YYY lbs. Otherwise, damage to the ve-

hicle and unstable driving situations may result.

  1. Determine the combined weight of the driver and passengers that will be riding in your vehicle.
  2. Subtract the combined weight of the driver and passengers from XXX kilograms or YYY pounds.
  3. The resulting figure equals the available amount of cargo and luggage load capacity. For example, if the YYY amount equals 1,000 lbs and there will be four 150 lbs passengers in your vehicle, the amount of available cargo and luggage load capacity is 400 lbs: 1,000 lbs minus 600 lbs = 400 lbs.
  4. Determine the combined weight of luggage and cargo being loaded on the vehicle. That weight may not safely exceed the available cargo and luggage load capacity calculated in Step 4.

Load

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Load - 1

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Load - 2

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Load - 3

The maximum load is the sum of the weight of the occupants and the cargo.

The greater the weight of the occupants, the less cargo that can be transported.

Stowing cargo

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Stowing cargo - 1

natural_image Side-view illustration of a sedan car showing the interior and exterior view (no text or symbols)

▶ Heavy cargo: stow as far forward and as low as possible, ideally directly behind the cargo area separating wall.
▶ Very heavy cargo: when the rear seat is not occupied, secure each of the outer safety belts in the opposite buckle.
▶ Cover sharp edges and corners.

Securing cargo

Lashing eyes in the cargo area

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Lashing eyes in the cargo area - 1

natural_image Mechanical component diagram showing a bracket with two directional arrows pointing to a button (no text or symbols present)

To secure the cargo, there are four lashing eyes in the cargo area

Securing cargo

▶ Smaller and lighter items: secure with retaining straps or with a cargo net or draw straps.
▶ Larger and heavy objects: secure with cargo straps.

Cargo straps, cargo netting, retaining straps or draw straps on the lashing eyes in the cargo area.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Securing cargo - 1

Securing cargo

Always position and secure the cargo as described above; otherwise, it can endanger the car's occupants if sudden braking or swerving becomes necessary.

Heavy or hard objects should not be carried loose inside the car; otherwise, they could be thrown around as a result of hard braking, sudden swerves, etc., and endanger the occupants.

Saving fuel

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

General information

Your vehicle contains advanced technology for the reduction of fuel consumption and emissions.

Fuel consumption depends on a number of different factors.

The implementation of certain measures, driving style and regular maintenance can have an influence on fuel consumption and on the environmental impact.

Remove unnecessary cargo

Additional weight increases fuel consumption.

Remove attached parts following use

Attached parts on the vehicle impair the aerodynamics and increase the fuel consumption.

Close the windows and glass sunroof

Driving with the glass sunroof and windows open results in increased air resistance and raises fuel consumption.

Check the tire inflation pressure regularly

Check and, if necessary, correct the tire inflation pressure at least twice a month and before starting on a long trip.

Low tire inflation pressure increases rolling resistance and thus raises fuel consumption and tire wear.

Drive away without delay

Do not wait for the engine to warm up while the vehicle remains stationary. Start driving right away, but at moderate engine speeds.

This is the fastest way for the cold engine to reach its operating temperature.

Look well ahead when driving

Avoid unnecessary acceleration and braking.

By maintaining a suitable distance to the vehicle driving ahead of you.

Driving smoothly and looking ahead reduces fuel consumption.

Avoid high engine speeds

Use 1st gear to get the vehicle in motion. Beginning with 2nd gear, accelerate rapidly. When accelerating, shift up before reaching high engine speeds.

When you reach the desired speed, shift into the highest applicable gear and drive with the engine speed as low as possible and at a constant speed.

As a rule: driving at low engine speeds lowers fuel consumption and reduces wear.

The gear shift indicator of your vehicle indicates the most fuel efficient gear.

Use coasting conditions

When approaching a red light, take your foot off the accelerator and let the vehicle coast to a halt.

On a downhill gradient, take your foot off the accelerator and let the vehicle roll.

The flow of fuel is interrupted while coasting.

Switch off the engine during longer stops

Switch off the engine during longer stops, e.g., at traffic lights, railroad crossings or in traffic congestion.

Fuel savings are achieved after the vehicle is switched off for only approx. 4 seconds.

The Automatic Engine Start/Stop Function of your vehicle automatically switches off the engine during a stop.

Switch off any functions that are not currently needed

Functions such as seat heating and the rear window defroster require a lot of energy and consume additional fuel, especially in city and stop-and-go traffic.

Therefore, switch off these functions if they are not actually needed.

Have maintenance carried out

Have vehicles maintained regularly to achieve optimal vehicle economy and operating life. Have the maintenance carried out by your service center.

Please also note the BMW Maintenance System, refer to page 260.

ECO PRO

The concept

ECO PRO supports a driving style that saves on fuel consumption. For this purpose, the engine control and comfort functions, e. g. the climate control output, are adjusted.

In addition, context-sensitive instructions can be displayed that assist in driving in a manner that optimizes fuel consumption.

The extension of the range that is achieved as a result can be displayed in the instrument cluster.

Activating ECO PRO

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Activating ECO PRO - 1

Button should be pressed and held until ECO PRO is displayed in the instru-

ment cluster.

Display in the instrument cluster

ECO PRO bonus range

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - ECO PRO bonus range - 1

An extension of the range can be achieved by an adjusted driving style.

This is displayed as the bonus range in the instrument cluster.

Driving style

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Driving style - 1

In the tachometer, a mark in the bar indicator indicates the current efficiency of the driving style corresponding to the accelerator pedal position.

▶ Blue display: efficient driving style as long as the mark moves within the blue range.
▶ Gray display: adjust driving style, e. g. by backing off the accelerator pedal.

The display switches to blue as soon as all conditions for fuel-economy-optimized driving are met.

ECO PRO Tip - driving instruction

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - ECO PRO Tip - driving instruction - 1

The arrow indicates that the driving style can be adjusted to be more fuel efficient by backing off the accelerator.

Additional symbols

Symbol Measure

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Measure - 1

For efficient driving style, back off the accelerator.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Measure - 2

Reduce speed to the selected ECO PRO speed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Measure - 3

Automatic transmission: switch from S to D or avoid manual shift interventions.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Measure - 4

Manual shift transmission: follow shifting instructions.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Measure - 5

Manual shift transmission: engage neutral for engine stop.

Configuring ECO PRO

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Driving mode"
  3. "Configure ECO PRO"
  4. Configure the program.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Configuring ECO PRO - 1

text_image Configure ECO PRO ECO PRO limit: 130 km/h ✓ ECO PRO speed warning ✓ ECO PRO climate control ECO PRO potential 0% 50% 100%

ECO PRO Tip

▶ "ECO PRO limit:",

Set ECO Pro speed at which an ECO PRO Tip is to be displayed.

▶ "ECO PRO speed warning":

A reminder is displayed if the set ECO PRO speed is exceeded.

ECO PRO climate control

"ECO PRO climate control"

The climate control is adjusted to be fuel-efficient.

The following settings are optimized:

▶ Cooling or heat output of the automatic climate control
Exterior mirror heating
▶ Seat heating

ECO PRO Potential

The percentage of potential savings that can be achieved with the current configuration is displayed.

Indications on the Control Display

EfficientDynamics

Information on fuel consumption and technology can be displayed during driving.

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "EfficientDynamics"

Displaying fuel consumption history

The average fuel consumption can be displayed within an adjustable time frame.

"Consumption history"

Adjusting fuel consumption history time frame

Select the symbol.

Resetting fuel consumption history

  1. "Options" Open.
  2. "Reset consumption history"

Displaying EfficientDynamics info

The current efficiency can be displayed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displaying EfficientDynamics info - 1

text_image EfficientDynamics EfficientDynamics

工 "EfficientDynamics Info"

The following systems are displayed:

▶ Automatic engine start/stop function.
▶ Energy recovery.
▶ Climate control output.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - 工 "EfficientDynamics Info" - 1

This chapter contains various examples of how the navigation system can guide you reliably to your destination.

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

General information

The navigation system can determine the precise position of the vehicle, with the aid of satellites and vehicle sensors, and can reliably guide you to every entered destination.

Navigation data are stored in the vehicle and can be updated.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Entries in stationary vehicle

Enter data only when the vehicle is stationary, and always give priority to the applicable traffic regulations in the event of any contradiction between traffic and road conditions and the instructions issued by the navigation system.

Failure to take to this precaution can place you in violation of the law and put vehicle occupants and other road users in danger.

Starting navigation system

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting navigation system - 1

Press the button on the controller.

  1. "Navigation"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting navigation system - 2

The navigation system can also be accessed directly with the button on the controller.

Destination input

Manual destination entry

General information

The system supports you in entering street names and house numbers by automatically completing the entry and providing entry comparisons, refer to page 21.

Stored town/city and street names can be called up quickly.

If the existing entries should not be changed, the entries for the state/province and town/city can be skipped.

Destination guidance is started to the town/city center if no street is entered.

Entering a state/province

  1. "Navigation"

  2. "Enter address"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Entering a state/province - 1

text_image Navigation ✓ Enter address Address book Last destinations Points of Interest Map Stored trips Route information
  1. Select "State/Province" or the displayed state/province.

Entering a town/city

  1. Select "Town/City/Postal Code" or the displayed town/city.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Entering a town/city - 1

text_image Enter address USA Town/City/Postal Code: (BEVERL Street House number Intersection Accept destination Points of Interest at loc.
  1. Select letters, if necessary.

The list is narrowed down further with each entry.

  1. Move the controller to the right.
  2. Select the town/city name from the list.

If there are several towns/cities with the same name:

  1. Change to the list of town/city names.
  2. Highlight the town/city.
  3. Select the town/city.

Entering the postal code

  1. Select "Town/City/Postal Code" or the displayed town/city.
  2. Select the symbol.
  3. Select the numbers.
  4. Change to the list of postal codes and towns/cities.
  5. Highlight the entry.
  6. Selecting an entry.

Entering a street and intersection

  1. Select "Street" or the displayed street.
  2. Enter a street and intersection in the same way as you would enter a town/city.

If there are several streets with the same name:

  1. Change to the list of street names.
  2. Highlight the street.

  3. Select the street.

Alternative: enter the street address and house number

  1. Select "Street" or the displayed street.
  2. Enter the street as you would the town/city.
  3. "House number"
  4. Select the numbers.
  5. Change to the list of house numbers.
  6. Select a house number or range of house numbers.

Street does not exist in the destination city/town

The desired street does not exist in the specified city/town because it belongs to another part of the city/town.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Enter address"
  3. Select "Street" or the displayed street.
  4. Change to the list of street names.
  5. Select "In" the displayed country.

All streets of the selected state/province are offered. The associated town/city is displayed after the street name.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Street does not exist in the destination city/town - 1

text_image In BEVERLY HILLS, CA In UNITED STATES MUSÄUSSTRASSE MUSENBERGSTRASSE MUSEUMSINSEL MUSPELHEIMSTRASSE MUSPILLISTRASSE
  1. Select the letters.
  2. Change to the list of street names.
  3. Highlight the street.
  4. Select the street.

Starting destination guidance after entering the destination

  1. "Accept destination"

  2. "Start guidance" or "Add as another destination"

Add a destination as a further destination, refer to page 165.

Address book

Selecting a destination from the address book

  1. "Navigation"

  2. "Address book"

Contacts with addresses are displayed if these have been checked as destinations.

If the mobile phone does not display the contacts with addresses, they must first be checked as a destination, refer to page 232.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting a destination from the address book - 1

text_image Navigation Enter address ✓ Address book Last destinations Points of Interest Map Stored trips Route information
  1. Select a contact in the list or, if desired, with "A-Z search".

  2. "Business address" or "Home address"

Storing the destination in the address book

After entering the destination, store the destination in the address book.

  1. "Navigation"

  2. "Map"

  3. "guidance"

  4. "Options" Open.

  5. "Store as new contact" or "Add to existing contact"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storing the destination in the address book - 1

text_image Options Switch off control display Address book Display Owner's Manual Enter address Store as new contact Add to existing contact BMW Assist dest. entry
  1. Select an existing contact, if available.

  2. "Business address" or "Home address"

  3. Enter "Last name" and, if necessary, "First name".

  4. "Store in vehicle"

Storing the position

The current position can be stored in the address book.

  1. "Navigation"

  2. "Options" Open.

  3. "Store position as contact" or "Add position to contact"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storing the position - 1

text_image Options Switch off control display Address book Display Owner's Manual Navigation Store position as contact Add position to contact ✓ Receive Traffic Info
  1. Depending on the selection, choose an existing contact from the list. Select the type of address and enter the first and last names.

  2. "Store in vehicle"

Editing or deleting an address

  1. "Navigation"

  2. "Address book"

  3. Highlight the entry.

  4. "Options" Open.
  5. "Edit in Contacts" or "Delete entry"

Using the home address as the destination

The home address must be stored. Specify the home address, refer to page 231.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Address book"
  3. "Home"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Using the home address as the destination - 1

text_image Address book Check My contacts address Home Andreas Angela Hans-Juergen Marcus
  1. "Start guidance"

Last destinations

At a glance

The destinations previously entered are stored automatically.

The destinations can be called up and used as a destination for destination guidance.

Calling up the last destination

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Last destinations"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Calling up the last destination - 1

text_image Navigation Enter address Address book ✓ Last destinations Points of Interest Map Stored trips Route information

Starting destination guidance

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Last destinations"
  3. Select the destination.
  4. "Start guidance"

Editing the destination

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Last destinations"
  3. Highlight the destination.
  4. Open "Options".
  5. "Edit destination"

Deleting the last destinations

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Last destinations"
  3. Highlight the destination.
  4. Open "Options".
  5. "Delete entry" or "Delete all last destinations"

Special destinations

Opening the search for special destinations

To select special destinations, e.g., hotels or tourist attractions:

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Points of Interest"
  3. Select the search function.
  1. "Google™ Local Search"
  2. Select a special destination.
  3. Select the symbol.
  4. "Start guidance"
  1. "A-Z search"
  2. "Town/City"

Select or enter the town/city.

  1. "Category"
  2. Select the category.
  3. "Category details"

For some special destinations, multiple category details can be selected. Move the controller to the left to leave the category details.

  1. "Keyword"
  2. Enter the keyword.

A list of the special destinations is displayed.

  1. Select a special destination.

Details are displayed.

If multiple details are stored, you can leaf through the pages.

If a phone number is available, a connection can be established if necessary.

  1. Select the symbol.

"Start guidance" or "Add as another destination"

Add a destination as a further destination, refer to page 165.

"Start search": if a search term is not entered, the search is repeated with the previous search term.

  1. "Category search"
  2. "Town/City"

Select or enter the town/city.

  1. "Category"
  2. Select the category.
  3. "Category details"

For some special destinations, multiple category details can be selected. Move the

controller to the left to leave the category details.

  1. "Start search"

A list of the special destinations is displayed.

  1. Select a special destination.

Details are displayed.

If multiple details are stored, you can leaf through the pages.

If a phone number is available, a connection can be established if necessary.

  1. Select the symbol.

"Start guidance" or "Add as another destination"

Add a destination as a further destination, refer to page 165.

Display of special destinations

List of special destinations: special destinations are organized by distance and are displayed with a directional arrow to the special destination.

on the split screen, special destinations of the selected category are displayed in the map view as symbols. The display depends on the scale of the map and the category.

Destination entry via BMW Assist

A connection is established to the Concierge service, refer to page 234.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Enter address"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "BMW Assist dest. entry"

Displaying special destinations in the map

To display symbols of the special destinations in the map view:

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. "Options" Open.

  4. "Display Points of Interest"

  5. Select the setting.

Destination entry by map

Selecting the destination

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"

The current position of the vehicle is indicated on the map.

  1. "Interactive map"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting the destination - 1

text_image 12:54 Interactive map 50 m
  1. Select the destination with crosshairs.

To change the scale: turn the controller.
To shift the map: move the controller in the required direction.
To shift the map diagonally: move the controller in the required direction and turn it.

Specifying the street

If the system does not recognize a street, one of the following is displayed:

The name of a street in the vicinity.
The county.
The coordinates of the destination.

Additional functions

Additional functions are available on the interactive map after the controller is pressed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Additional functions - 1

text_image Selected position 48°08'10"O 11°34'36"N Exit interactive map View in northern direction Display destination Display current location Find points of interest

▶ Select the symbol.

"Start guidance" or "Add as another destination"

Add a destination as a further destination, refer to page 165.

"Exit interactive map": return to the map view.
▶ "View in northern direction" or "View in driving direction"
▷ "Display destination": the map section around the destination is displayed.
▶ "Display current location": the map section around your current location is displayed.
▷ "Find points of interest": the search for special destinations is started.

Destination entry by voice

General information

▶ Instructions for voice activation system, refer to page 22.
When making a destination entry by voice, you can change between voice operation and iDrive.
To have the available spoken instructions read out loud: »Voice commands«

Saying the entries

▶ the town/city, street, and house number can be entered as a single command.
▶ Countries, towns and cities, streets, and intersections can be said as whole words or spelled in the language of the system, refer to page 79.

Example: to enter a town/city in a US state as a whole word, the language of the system must be English.

▶ Spell the entry if the spoken language and the language of the system differ.
▷ Say the letters smoothly, and avoid exaggerating the pronunciation and inserting lengthy pauses between the letters.
The options available for entering data depend on the navigation data and the country and language settings.

entering an address using a command

  1. Press the button on the steering wheel.

  2. »Enter address«

  3. Wait for a request from the system.
  4. Say the address in the suggested order.
  5. Continue making the entry as prompted by the system.

If necessary, individually name the separate components of the address, e.g., the town/city.

Entering a town/city separately

The name of the town/city can be said as a word or spelled out.

With the destination entry menu displayed:

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Entering a town/city separately - 1

  1. Press the button on the steering wheel.

  2. »City« or »Spell city«.

  3. Wait for the system to prompt you for the town/city.
  4. Say the name of the town/city, or say at least the first three letters.

Depending on the entry, up to 20 towns/cities may be suggested.

  1. Select the town/city.

To select a recommended town/ city: »Yes«

To select a different town/city: >New entry
▶ Select an entry: >Entry ...< e.g., entry 2
To spell an entry: >Spell city

  1. Continue making the entry as prompted by the system.

If there are several towns/cities with the same name:

Towns/cities of the same name are grouped in a list and displayed as one location followed by an ellipsis.

  1. Select an entry: >Yes< or >Entry ...< e.g., Entry 2.
  2. Select the desired town/city.

Entering a street or intersection separately

Enter a street and intersection in the same way as you would enter a town/city.

Entering a house number separately

Depending on the data in the navigation system, house numbers up to number 2,000 can be entered.

  1. »House number«
  2. Say the house number.

Say each digit separately.

  1. Continue making the entry as prompted by the system.

Planning a trip with intermediate destinations

New trip

A trip can be planned with several intermediate destinations.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. Move the controller to the left if necessary.
  4. "Guidance"

  5. "Enter new destination"

  6. Select the type of destination entry.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - New trip - 1

text_image New destination Enter address using: Enter address Address book Last destinations Points of Interest Interactive map
  1. Enter the intermediate destination.
  2. "Start guidance"

Entering intermediate destinations

A maximum of 30 intermediate destinations can be entered for one trip.

  1. "Enter new destination"
  2. Select the type of destination entry.
  3. Enter the intermediate destination.

  4. "Add as another destination" The intermediate destination is entered in the destination list and is highlighted.

  5. Turn the controller until the intermediate destination is located in the desired position in the list.
  6. Press the controller.

Starting the trip

  1. After all intermediate destinations are entered, highlight the first destination.

If the second destination, for example, is highlighted when destination guidance is started, the first destination is skipped.

  1. "Start guidance"

This symbol marks the active leg of the trip.

Store the trip

Up to 30 trips can be stored in the trip list. If necessary, delete existing trips to be able to store new trips.

  1. "Options" Open.
  2. "Store trip"
  3. Enter the name.
  4. "OK"

Select the stored trip

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Stored trips"
  3. Select a stored trip.
  4. "Start guidance"

Reversing the direction of travel

Intermediate destinations are displayed in reverse order in the list.

  1. "Map"
  2. "Guidance"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Reverse order of trip dest."

Intermediate destination options

  1. "Map"
  2. "Guidance"
  3. "Display all trip destinations"
  4. Select an intermediate destination.
    ▶ "Edit destination"
    ▶ "Reposition dest. in the trip": move an intermediate destination to another position in the list.
    ▶ "Delete dest. in the trip"
    ▶ "Go to next dest. in the trip"

Some options are not available for certain trips.

Delete the stored trip

  1. "Stored trips"
  2. Highlight the desired trip.

  3. "Options" Open.

  4. "Delete all trips" or "Delete trip"

Open the last trip

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Stored trips"
  3. "Last trip"
  4. "Start guidance"

Destination guidance

Starting destination guidance

  1. "Navigation"
  2. Make a destination entry, refer to page 158.
  3. "Accept destination"
  4. "Start guidance"
    The route is shown on the Control Display.
    The distance to the destination/intermediate destination and the estimated time of arrival are displayed in the map view.
    The arrow view is shown in the instrument cluster, in the Head-up Display, and on the Control Display where appropriate.

Terminating destination guidance

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. "Guidance"
  4. "Stop guidance"

Continuing destination guidance

If the destination was not reached during the last trip, destination guidance can be resumed.

"Resume guidance"

Route criteria

General information

The route calculated can be influenced by selecting certain criteria.

The route criteria can be changed when the destination is entered and during destination guidance.
Road types are part of the navigation data and are taken into consideration when planning a route, e.g., avoid highways.
The recommended route may differ from the route you would take based on personal experience.
The settings are stored for the remote control currently in use.
Destination guidance with traffic bulletins, refer to page 172.

Changing the route criteria

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. 📷 Route preference"

  4. Select the criterion:

▶ "Fast route": time-optimized route, being a combination of the shortest possible route and the fastest roads.
▶ "ECO PRO route": optimized combination of the fastest and shortest route.
▶ "Short route": short distance, irrespective of how fast or slow progress will be.
▶ "Alternative routes": if available, alternative routes are suggested during active route guidance.

The individual suggestions are highlighted in color.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing the route criteria - 1

text_image Route preference ✓ Fast route ECO PRO route Short route 10:17 44 km Alternative routes 10:24 36 km 10:27 50 km
  1. Specify additional criteria for the route, if necessary:

▶ "Avoid highways": highways are avoided wherever possible.
▶ "Avoid toll roads": toll roads are avoided wherever possible.
▶ "Avoid ferries": ferries are avoided where possible.

Route

Different views of the route are available during destination guidance:

▶ Arrow view in the instrument cluster and on the Control Display.
▷ List of route sections.
▶ Map view, refer to page 168.
▶ Arrow view in the Head-up Display., refer to page 129

Arrow view

The following information is displayed during destination guidance:

▶ Large arrow: current direction of travel.
▶ Street name of the currently traveled street.
▶ Small arrow: indicates the next change in direction.
▶ Intersection view.
▶ Lane information.
▶ Traffic bulletins.
Distance to the next change in direction.

▷ Street name at the next change in direction.

Lane information

On multi-lane roads, the recommended lanes are marked in the arrow view by a triangle.

Solid triangle: best lane.
▶ Empty triangle: possible lane. However, another lane change may be needed shortly.

Displaying list of route sections

When the destination guidance is started, a list of route sections can be displayed. The driving distances and traffic bulletins are displayed for each route section.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Route information"
  3. Highlight route section.
    The route section is displayed on the split screen.

Bypassing a section of the route

Calculate a new route for a route section.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Route information"
  3. "New route for"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Bypassing a section of the route - 1

text_image Route information New route for
  1. Turn the controller. Enter the number of kilometers within which you would like to return to the original route.

  2. Press the controller.

Resuming the original route

If the route section should no longer be bypassed:

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Route information"
  3. "New route for:"
  4. "Remove blocking"

Gas station recommendation

The remaining range is calculated, and if necessary gas stations along the route are displayed.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Route information"
  3. "Recommended refuel"
    A list of the gas stations is displayed.

  4. Highlight a gas station.
    The position of the gas station is displayed on the split screen.

  5. Select the gas station.

  6. Select the symbol.

  7. "Start guidance": destination guidance to the selected gas station is started.

"Add as another destination": the gas station is added to the route.

Switching spoken instructions on/off

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. "Voice instructions"

Repeating spoken instructions

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. Highlight the symbol.
  4. Press the controller twice.

Volume of spoken instructions

Turn the volume button while giving an instruction until the desired volume is set.

Saving the spoken instructions on the programmable memory buttons

The function for switching the spoken instructions on/off can be stored on a programmable memory button, refer to page 20, for quick access.

Map view

Selecting the map view

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"

At a glance

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - At a glance - 1

text_image 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 VI 4:17 65 km 10 km

1 Function bar
2 Route section with traffic obstruction
3 Traffic sign for traffic obstruction
4 Planned route
5 Current location
6 Upper status field
7 Lower status field

Lines in the map

Streets and routes are displayed in different colors and styles depending on their classification. Dashed lines represent railways and ferry connections. Country borders are indicated by thin lines.

Traffic obstructions

Small triangles along the planned route indicate route sections with traffic obstructions, depending on the map scale. The direction of the triangles indicates the direction of the obstruction.

The traffic signs indicate the significance of the obstruction.

▶ Red traffic sign: the obstruction affects the planned route or direction.
▶ Gray traffic sign: the obstruction does not affect the planned route or direction.

Traffic bulletins, refer to page 170.

Planned route

After destination guidance is started, the planned route is displayed on the map.

Status fields

Show/hide: press the controller.

▶ Upper status field: time, telephone, and entertainment details.
▶ Lower status field: symbol for active destination guidance, status of traffic bulletins, time of arrival, and distance to destination.

Function bar

The following functions are available in the function bar:

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

Start/end destination guidance.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 2

Switch spoken instructions on/off.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 3

Change the route criteria.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 4

Search for a special destination.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 5

Display traffic bulletins.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 6

Interactive map.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 7

Set the map view.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 8

Change the scale.

To change to the function bar, move the controller to the left.

Changing the map section

⊕ "Interactive map"

To shift the map: move the controller in the required direction.
To shift the map diagonally: move the controller in the required direction and turn it.

Changing the scale

  1. Select the symbol.

  2. To change the scale: turn the controller.

Automatically scaled map scale

In the map view facing north, turn the controller in any direction until the AUTO scale is displayed. The map shows the entire route between the current location and the destination.

Settings for the map view

The settings are stored for the remote control currently in use.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Settings"

Set the map view.

▶ "Day/night mode"

Select and create the necessary settings depending on the light conditions.

"Traffic conditions/gray map" active: the setting is disregarded.

▶ "Satellite images"

Depending on availability and resolution, satellite images are displayed in a scale of approx. 1 mile to 600 miles/2 km to 1,000 km.

▶ "Perspective view in 3D"

Prominent areas that are contained in the navigation data are displayed on the map in 3D.

▶ "Traffic conditions/gray map"

The map is optimized for displaying traffic bulletins, refer to page 170. Symbols for the special destinations are no longer displayed.

Map view for split screen

The map view can be selected for the split screen independently from the main screen.

  1. "Options" Open.
  2. "Split screen"
  3. Move the controller to the right repeatedly until the split screen is selected.
  4. Select "Split screen content" or the scale.
  5. Select the map view.

▶ "Arrow display"
▶ "Map facing north"
▶ "Map direction of travel"
▶ "Map view with perspective"
"Position"
"Exit ramp view": selected blind driveways are displayed three dimensionally. Setting in some cases will affect the display in the Head-Up Display.
▶ "Traffic conditions/gray map"

  1. To change the scale: select the split screen and turn the controller.

Traffic bulletins

At a glance

▶ Display the traffic bulletins from radio stations that broadcast the TI Traffic Information of a traffic information service. Information on traffic obstructions and hazards is updated continuously.

Certain BMW models equipped with navigation have the capability to display realtime traffic information. If your system has this capability the following additional terms and conditions apply:

An End-User shall no longer have the right to use the Traffic Data in the event that the End-User is in material breach of the terms and conditions contained herein.

A. Total Traffic Network, a division of Clear Channel Broadcasting, Inc. (“Total Traffic Network”) holds the rights to the traffic incident data and RDS-TMC network through which it is delivered. You may not modify, copy, scan or use any other method to reproduce, duplicate, republish, transmit or distribute in any way any portion of traffic incident data. You agree to indemnify, defend and hold harmless BMW of North America, LLC. (“BMW NA”) and Total Traffic Network, Inrix, Inc (and their affiliates) against any and all claims, damages, costs or other expenses that arise directly or indirectly out of (a) your unauthorized use of the traffic incident data or the RDS-TMC network, (b) your violation of this directive and/or (c) any unauthorized or unlawful activities by you in connection herewith.

B. Total Traffic Network traffic data is informational only. User assumes all risk of use. Total Traffic Network, BMW NA, and their suppliers make no representations about content, traffic and road conditions, route usability, or speed.

C. The licensed material is provided to licensee “as is,” and “where is”. Total Traffic Network, including, but not limited to, any and all third party providers of any of the licensed material, expressly disclaims, to the fullest extent permitted by law, all warranties or representations with respect to the licensed material (including, without limitation, that the licensed material will be error-free, will operate without interruption or that the traffic data will be accurate), express, implied or statutory, including, without limitation, the implied warranties of merchanta-

bility, non-infringement fitness for a particular purpose, or those arising from a course of dealing or usage of trade.

D. Neither Total Traffic Network, Inrix, Inc. or BMW NA will be liable to you for any indirect, special, consequential, exemplary, or incidental damages (including, without limitation, lost revenues, anticipated revenues, or profits relating to the same) arising from any claim relating directly or indirectly to use of the traffic data, and even if Total Traffic Network, Inrix, Inc., or BMW NA are aware of the possibility of such damages. These limitations apply to all claims, including, without limitation, claims in contract and tort (such as negligence, product liability and strict liability). Some states do not allow the exclusion or limitation of incidental or consequential damages, so those particular limitations may not apply to you.

The traffic bulletins are indicated on the map by symbols.
The traffic bulletins for the surrounding area are stored in a list.

The symbol in the function bar of the map view turns red if there are traffic bulletins that affect the calculated route.

Switching the reception on/off

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Options" Open.
  3. "Receive Traffic Info"

Opening the traffic bulletins

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. "Traffic Info"

First the traffic bulletins for the calculated route are displayed. The traffic bulletins are sorted by their distance from the current position of the vehicle.

  1. Select a traffic bulletin.

"More information": display additional information.

  1. Scroll to the next or previous traffic bulletin if required.

Traffic bulletins on the map

"Traffic conditions/gray map" Active: indication on the control display is switched to shades of gray. This enables a better view of the traffic bulletins. Day/night mode is not taken into account in this setting. Symbols and special destinations are not displayed.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Settings"
  5. "Traffic conditions/gray map"

Symbols in the map view

Depending on the scale of the map and the location of the traffic obstruction along the route, the symbols for the traffic obstructions are displayed.

Additional information in the map view

Depending on the map scale, a traffic obstruction's length, direction, and impact are displayed in the map using triangles or gray bars along the calculated route.

▶ Red: congestion.
▶ Orange: stop-and-go traffic.
▶ Yellow: heavy traffic.
▷ Green: clear roads.
- Gray: general traffic bulletins, e.g., construction site.

The displayed information depends on the particular traffic information service.

Filtering traffic bulletins

You can set which traffic bulletins appear on the map.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Traffic Info categories"
  5. Select the desired categories.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Filtering traffic bulletins - 1

text_image Categories ✓ Traffic flow ✓ Roadwork ✓ Closed roads ✓ Traffic disruptions

Traffic bulletins of the selected category are displayed on the map.

▶ Traffic bulletins that are relevant to the route are always shown.
For your own safety, traffic bulletins that notify you of potentially dangerous situations, such as wrong-way drivers, cannot be hidden.

Destination guidance with traffic bulletins

Detour suggestions from the navigation system can be manually accepted in the semi-dynamic destination guidance. In the dynamic destination guidance, they are automatically accepted in the route guidance.

Semi-dynamic destination guidance

When traffic bulletin reception is switched on, semi-dynamic destination guidance is active.

The destination guidance system takes the available traffic information into account. A message is displayed depending on the route, the traffic bulletins, and the possible detour routes. When there is a traffic obstruction, if possible, a detour is offered. In addition, distance and time differences between the original route and the detour are displayed.

To accept the detour:

"Detour"

In the event of special hazards, e. g., objects on the road, a message is displayed without a detour suggestion.

Detours can also be accepted if the traffic messages are called up in the list.

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Map"
  3. "Traffic Info"
  4. "Detour information"
  5. "Detour"

Dynamic destination guidance

The route is automatically changed in the event of traffic obstructions.

The system does not point out traffic obstructions along the original route.
▶ Traffic bulletins continue to be displayed on the map.
▶ Depending on road type and the kind and extent of the traffic obstruction, the calculated route may lead through the traffic obstruction.
▶ Dangerous situations are displayed regardless of the setting.

To activate dynamic destination guidance:

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Options" Open.
  3. "Dynamic guidance"

Information on the navigation data

  1. "Navigation"
  2. "Options" Open.

  3. "Navigation system version": information on the data version is displayed.

Updating the navigation data

General information

Navigation data and authorization codes are available from your service center. Navigation data are stored in the vehicle and can be updated.

▶ Depending on the data volume, a data update may take several hours.
▶ Update during the trip to preserve battery.
During the update, only the basic functions of the navigation system are available.
The status of the update can be viewed.
The system restarts after the update.
The data carrier with the navigation data can be removed after the update is complete.

Perform an update

  1. Insert the navigation DVD into the DVD player with the labeled side facing up.
  2. Follow the instructions on the Control Display.
  3. Enter the authorization code of the navigation DVD and change the DVD if needed.

After interrupting your trip, follow the instructions on the Control Display.

Viewing the status

  1. OPTION Press the button.

  2. "Navigation update"

What to do if...

The current transmission position cannot be displayed?

The vehicle is located in an unrecognized region, is in a poor reception area, or the system is currently determining the posi-

tion. Reception is usually best when you have an unobstructed view of the sky.

The destination without street information is not used for route guidance?
When city has been input, no downtown can be determined.
Input any street in the selected city and start destination guidance.

The destination is not used for route guidance?

The destination data is not contained in the navigation data. Select a destination that is as close as possible to the original.

▷ Letters for destination input cannot be selected?

The stored data do not contain the data of the destination.

Select a goal that is as close as possible to the original.

▷ Is the map displayed in shades of gray?
"Traffic conditions/gray map" Active: indication on the control display is switched to shades of gray. This enables a better view of the traffic bulletins.
▶ Spoken instructions are no longer output during route guidance in front of intersections?

The area has not yet been fully recorded, or you have left the recommended route and the system requires a few seconds to calculate a new route suggestion.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - What to do if... - 1

text_image Online Course for Part 10, 01 40 2 607 971 - 09 11 490

Entertainment

The chapter helps assure your enjoyment when receiving radio and television stations and playing CDs, DVDs and tracks from the music collection.

Tone

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

General information

The tone control and speaker lighting settings are stored for the currently used remote control.

Treble, bass, balance, and fader

▶ "Treble": treble adjustment.
▶ "Bass": depth adjustment.
▶ "Balance": left/right volume distribution.
▶ "Fader": front/rear volume distribution.

Setting treble, bass, balance, and fader

  1. "CD/Multimedia", "Radio" or "Settings"
  2. "Tone"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting treble, bass, balance, and fader - 1

text_image Radio FM AM Satellite radio Presets Weather band ✓ Tone
  1. Select the desired tone settings.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting treble, bass, balance, and fader - 2

text_image Tone Treble - + + Bass - + + Balance L R Fader F R Equalizer ✓ Surround Volume settings
  1. To adjust: turn the controller.
  2. To store: press the controller.

Equalizer

Setting for individual audio frequency ranges.

Adjusting the equalizer

  1. "CD/Multimedia", "Radio" or "Settings"
  2. "Tone"
  3. "Equalizer"
  4. Select the desired setting.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjusting the equalizer - 1

text_image Equalizer 100 Hz - + + 200 Hz - + + 500 Hz - + + 1 kHz - + + 2 kHz - + + 5 kHz - + + 10 kHz - + +
  1. To adjust: turn the controller.
  2. To store: press the controller.

Multi-channel playback, surround

Choose between stereo and multi-channel play-back, surround.

Setting multi-channel playback, surround

  1. "CD/Multimedia", "Radio" or "Settings"
  2. "Tone"
  3. "Surround"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting multi-channel playback, surround - 1

text_image Tone Treble - + Bass - + Balance L R Fader F R Equalizer ✓ Surround Volume settings

When surround is activated, multi-channel play-back is simulated when a stereo audio track is played.

Bang & Olufsen High End Surround Sound System

Tone control

  1. "CD/Multimedia", "Radio" or "Settings"
  2. "Tone"
  3. "Bang & Olufsen"
  4. Select the desired tone settings.
    ▶ "Studio": studio tone settings.
    ▶ "Expanded": open space tone settings.

Adjusting speaker lighting

All speakers in the vehicle are illuminated. The lighting can be individually set.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Lighting"

  3. "Bang & Olufsen"

  4. Select the desired lighting setting.

▶ "Off": no lighting.

▶ "Reduced": all speakers in the field of view are hidden while driving.

▶ "On": all speakers are always illuminated.

Center speaker

An additional speaker is present on the dashboard. When Entertainment is switched on, it switches off automatically and is illuminated according to the lighting setting.

If Entertainment is switched off or muting is activated, the speaker breaks back in.

Volume

▶ "Speed volume": speed-dependent volume control.
With Bang & Olufsen High End Surround Sound System: Automatic adjustment of the volume depending on the driving noises, e. g. wind noises, that can be heard in the interior.
▶ "PDC": volume of the PDC signal compared to the entertainment sound output.
▷ "Gong": volume of the signal, e. g., the safety belt reminder, compared to the entertainment sound output.
▶ "Microphone": volume of the microphone during a phone call.
"Loudspeak.": volume of the loudspeakers during a phone call.
The following volumes are only stored for the respective paired telephone: "Microphone", "Loudspeak.".

Adjusting the volume

  1. "CD/Multimedia", "Radio" or "Settings"
  2. "Tone"

  3. "Volume settings"

  4. Select the desired volume setting.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjusting the volume - 1

text_image Volume settings PDC - + Gong - + Telephone: Setting possible only during a call. Microphone - + Loudspeak. - +
  1. To adjust: turn the controller.
  2. To store: press the controller.

Resetting the tone settings

  1. "CD/Multimedia", "Radio" or "Settings"
  2. "Tone"
  3. "Reset"

Radio

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Controls
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 1

text_image 1 MODE 2 FRAME 5 4 3 3

1 Change entertainment sources
2 Change station/track
3 Programmable memory buttons
4 Volume, on/off
5 Change wave band

Sound output

Switching on/off

When the ignition is switched off: press ON/OFF button on the radio.

Muting

When the ignition is switched on or the engine is running: press the ON/OFF button on the radio.

AM/FM station

Selecting a station

  1. "Radio"
  2. "FM" or "AM"
  3. Select the desired station.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting a station - 1

text_image FM Manual CARIVARI ENERGY GONG96.3 ✓ Klassik 100.0 MHz 101.3 MHz

All saved stations are stored for the remote control currently in use.

Changing the station

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Changing the station - 1

Press the button.

Storing a station

  1. "Radio"
  2. "FM" or "AM"
  3. Highlight the desired station.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storing a station - 1

text_image FM Manual CARIVARI ENERGY GONG96.3 ✓ Klassik 100.0 MHz 101.3 MHz
  1. Press the controller for an extended period.

  2. Select the desired memory location.

The stations are stored for the remote control currently in use.

The stations can also be stored on the programmable memory buttons, refer to page 20.

Selecting a station manually

Station selection via the frequency.

  1. "Radio"
  2. "FM" or "AM"
  3. "Manual"
  4. To select the frequency: turn the controller.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting a station manually - 1

radar | Value | |-------| | 96 | | 98 | | 100 | | 102 | | 104 | | 106 | | 108 | | 100 | | 94 | | 92 | | 90 | | 88 |

To store the station: press the controller for an extended period.

RDS

RDS broadcasts additional information, such as the station name, in the FM wave band.

Switching the RDS on/off

  1. "Radio"
  2. "FM"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "RDS"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching the RDS on/off - 1

text_image Options ✓ Split screen Switch off control display FM Display Owner's Manual ☐ HD Radio Reception ☐ RDS Radio

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

HD Radio™ reception

Many stations broadcast both analog and digital signals.

License conditions

HD Radio™ technology manufactured under license from iBiquity Digital Corp. U. S. and Foreign Patents. HD Radio™ and the HD and HD Radio logos are proprietary trademarks of iBiquity Digital Corp.

Activating/deactivating digital radio reception

  1. "Radio"
  2. "FM" or "AM"
  3. Open "Options".
  4. "HD Radio Reception"

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

H) This symbol is displayed in the status line when the audio signal is digital.

In areas in which the station is not continuously received in digital mode, the playback switches between analog and digital reception. Due to time delayed broadcasting, there may be repetitions or interruptions. In this case, switch off digital radio reception.

Displaying additional information

Some stations broadcast additional information on the current track, such as the name of the artist.

  1. Select the desired station.
  2. Open "Options".
  3. "Station info"

Selecting a substation

This symbol indicates that a main station also broadcasts additional substations. The station name of the main station ends in HD1. Station names of the substations end in HD2, HD3, etc.

  1. Select the desired station.

  2. Press the controller.

  3. Select the substation.

When reception is poor, the substation is muted for several seconds. If reception is interrupted for an extended period, it switches back to the main station.

Weather Band

General information

The availability of the Weather Band and the number of available channels can vary depending on the region.

Switching on the Weather Band

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Weather band"
  3. Select the desired channel.

Additional information

Weather Band is a service of the National Oceanic and Atmospheric Administration (NOAA). Additional information on the Internet: www.nws.noaa.gov.

Satellite radio

General information

The channels are offered in predefined packages. The packages must be enabled by telephone.

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 2

Change the list view.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 3

Select the category.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 4

Direct channel entry

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 5

Timeshift

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

☆Open the My Favorites category/open a favorite.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 2

Manage the favorites.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 3

Traffic Jump

The functions of the navigation bar symbols can also be stored on the programmable memory buttons, refer to page 20.

Managing a subscription

To be able to enable or unsubscribe from the channels, you must have reception. It is usually at its best when you have an unobstructed view of the sky. The channel name is displayed in the status line.

Enabling channels

The Unsubscribed Channels category contains all disabled channels.

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. "Category"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Enabling channels - 1

text_image Satellite radio Category Snow Patrol Chasing Cars All channels 001 Sirius Hits 1 ✓ 002 StarLite 003 Sirius Love 004 Movin EZ
  1. Select the Unsubscribed Channels category.
  2. Select the desired channel.

The phone number and an electronic serial number, ESN, are displayed.

  1. Select the phone number to have the channel enabled.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Enabling channels - 2

text_image Subscribe to Sirius Call Sirius to subscribe. ESN: 020 373 371 411 1-888-539-SIRIUS

You can unsubscribe from the channels again via this phone number.

Unsubscribing from channels

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. Open "Options".
  4. "Manage subscription"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Unsubscribing from channels - 1

text_image Options Store channel Satellite radio Display Owner's Manual Manage subscription Set jump Radio Select rear source
  1. The phone number and an electronic serial number, ESN, are displayed.
  2. Call Sirius to unsubscribe from the channels.

Selecting channels

You can only listen to enabled channels.

The selected channel is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Via iDrive

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. Select "All channels" or the desired category.
  4. Select the desired channel.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Via iDrive - 1

text_image Satellite radio Snow Patrol Chasing Cars All channels 001 Sirius Hits 1 ✓ 002 StarLite 003 Sirius Love 004 Movin EZ

Via the buttons on the center console

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Via the buttons on the center console - 1

Press the button.

The next channel is selected.

Via direct channel entry

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. "Set channel"
  4. Turn the controller until the desired channel is reached and press the controller.

Storing a channel

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. If necessary, open "All channels" or the desired category.
  4. Select the desired channel.
  5. Press the controller again.

  6. Press the controller again to confirm the highlighted channel.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storing a channel - 1

text_image Store Store in presets 001 Sirius Hits 1 Store in favorites The Fray; Over My Head (Cable...
  1. Select the desired memory location.

The channels are stored for the remote control currently in use.

The channels can also be stored on the programmable memory buttons, refer to page 20.

Changing the list view

The list view changes every time the first symbol on the navigation bar is pressed.

Information on the channel is displayed.

Symbol Meaning

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 1

Channel name

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 2

Artist

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 3

Track

Selecting a category

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. "Category"
  4. Select the desired category.

Timeshift

Approx. one hour of the program being broadcast on the channel currently being listened to is stored in a buffer. Prerequisite: the signal must be available.

The stored audio track can be played with a delay following the live broadcast. When the buffer

is full, the older tracks are overwritten. The buffer is cleared when a new channel is selected.

Opening the timeshift function

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. "Replay - Time shift"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the timeshift function - 1

text_image Replay - Time shift Snow Patrol Chasing Cars -4:07

The red arrow shows the current playback position.
The time difference to the live broadcast is displayed next to the buffer bar.

For live transmissions: "live".

Timeshift menu

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

Go to the live broadcast

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 2

| |Playback/pause

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 3

Next track

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 4

Previous track

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 5

Fast forward

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 6

Reverse

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 7

Automatic timeshift deactivated/activated

Automatic timeshift

When the function is activated, audio playback is stopped automatically in the event of:

▶ Incoming and outgoing telephone calls.
▶ Activation of the voice activation system.

▶ Muting.

The audio playback then continues with a time delay.

To activate:

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. "Replay - Time shift"
  4. "Automatic time shift"

To deactivate: Automatic time shift".

Storing favorites

Up to 30 favorites can be stored in the favorites list. Available favorites are artist, track, game, league, and team.

Storing the artist, track, or game

It is only possible to store favorites that are currently being broadcast. The channel information must be available.

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. If necessary, open "All channels" or the desired category.
  4. Select the desired channel.
  5. Press the controller again.
  6. Select the artist, track, or game.

Storing the league or team

Leagues or teams can be added to the favorites from a selection list.

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. "Manage favorites"

  4. "Add sports information"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storing the league or team - 1

text_image Favorites ✓ Activate alert Artists ✓ The Fray; Titles ✓ Proud Mary (1969) ✓ Livin' On A Prayer (1987) Add sports information
  1. Select the league.
  2. Select "Add all teams" or the desired team.

Opening the favorites

If an activated favorite is played back, the following message appears for approx. 20 seconds: "Favorite alert!".

☆* "Favorites"

Select the symbol while the message is shown.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the favorites - 1

text_image Satellite radio Favorite alert! Proud Mary (1969) All Channels 001 Sirius Hits 1 002 StarLite 003 Sirius Love 004 Movin EZ

The displayed favorite is played.

If there is no message, the system changes to the My Favorites category. All favorites currently being broadcast can be selected from a list.

Managing the favorites

Activating/deactivating the favorites

Favorites can be activated and deactivated globally and individually.

  1. "Satellite radio"
  2. "Manage favorites"
  3. Select "Activate alert" or the desired favorites.

The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Deleting favorites

  1. "Satellite radio"
  2. "manage favorites"
  3. Highlight the desired favorite.
  4. Open "Options".
  5. "Delete entry"

Traffic Jump

Traffic and weather information for a selected region is broadcast every few minutes.

Selecting a region

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. Open "Options".
  4. "Set jump"
  5. Select the desired region.

The region is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Activating/deactivating the jump

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Satellite radio"
  3. "Jump to:"

Information for the selected region is broadcast as soon as it is available.

A new panel opens.

Canceling the Traffic Jump: "Cancel".

Symbol Meaning

Information will be broadcast shortly.

Information is currently being broadcast.

Select one of the symbols to deactivate Traffic Jump.

Automatic update

About twice a year, Sirius performs an update of the channel names and positions. The update takes place automatically and may take several minutes.

Notes

▶ Reception may not be available in some situations, such as under certain environmental or topographic conditions. The satellite radio has no influence on this.
The signal may not be available in tunnels or underground garages next to tall buildings or near trees, mountains or other powerful sources of radio interference.

Stored stations

General information

It is possible to store up to 40 stations.

Calling up a station

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Presets"
  3. Select the desired station.

Storing a station

The station currently selected is stored.

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Presets"
  3. "Store station"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storing a station - 1

text_image Presets Store station 1 Hit Radio FM 2 Classic Radio FM 3 Chart Radio FM 4 News Radio FM
  1. Select the desired memory location.

The list of stored stations is stored for the remote control currently in use.

The stations can also be stored on the programmable memory buttons, refer to page 20.

Deleting a station

  1. "Radio"
  2. "Presets"
  3. Select the desired station.
  4. "Options" Open.
  5. "Delete entry"

CD/multimedia

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Controls
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 1

text_image 1 2 3 4 MODE FINM 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 6 5

1 Change the entertainment source
2 CD/DVD drive
3 Eject CD/DVD
4 Change station/track
5 Programmable memory buttons
6 Volume, on/off

Sound output

Switching on/off

When the ignition is switched off: press ON/OFF button on the radio.

Muting

When the ignition is switched on or the engine is running: press the ON/OFF button on the radio.

CD/DVD

Playback

Loading the CD/DVD player

Insert the CD/DVD with the printed side up.

Playback begins automatically.

Reading can take a few minutes with compressed audio files.

Starting playback

A CD/DVD is located in the CD/DVD player or DVD changer.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "CD/DVD"
  3. Select the desired CD or DVD.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting playback - 1

text_image CD/DVD ✓ Best off Brothers in arms CD-Rom Mezzanine Reload Beautiful Black Market Music

Symbol Meaning

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 1

CD/DVD player

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 2

... DVD changer

playable formats

DVD: DVD-ROM, DVD-R, DVD+R, DVD-RW, DVD+RW, DVD-R DL, DVD+R DL, DVD audio (video part only), DVD video.
CD: CD-ROM, CD-R, CD-RW, CD-DA, VCD, SVCD.
▶ Compressed audio files: MP3, WMA, AAC, M4A.

CD/DVD removal

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - CD/DVD removal - 1

s the button.

The CD/DVD is partially ejected.

  1. Remove the CD/DVD.

Audio playback

Selecting the track using the button

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting the track using the button - 1

Press the button repeatedly until the desired track is played.

Selecting a track via iDrive

Audio CDs

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Audio CDs - 1

text_image Audio CD Bruce Springsteen Magic 00:28 01/14 Store in vehicle Nowhere You'll Be Comin' Down Livin' In The Future

Select the desired track to begin playback.

CDs/DVDs with compressed audio files

Depending on the data, some letters and numbers of the CD/DVD may not be displayed correctly.

  1. Select the directory if necessary.

To go up a level in the directory: move the controller to the left.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - CDs/DVDs with compressed audio files - 1

text_image CD Santana Supernatural 00:38 223/249 Prince ✓ Santana Sportfreunde Stiller Tom Jones
  1. Select the desired track to begin playback.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - CDs/DVDs with compressed audio files - 2

text_image CD Santana Supernatural 00:08 223/249 Store in vehicle (Da Le) Valeo ✓ Africa Bamba Corazon Espinado (Fe...

Displaying information on the track

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displaying information on the track - 1

text_image CD Santana Supernatural 00:38 223/249 Prince ✓ Santana Sportfreunde Stiller Tom Jones

If information about a track has been stored, it is displayed automatically:

▷ Interpret.
▶ Album track.
▶ Number of tracks on the CD/DVD.
▶ File name of track.

Random playback

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "CD/DVD"
  3. Select the desired CD or DVD.

  4. "Options" Open.

  5. "Random"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Random playback - 1

text_image Options Switch off control display CD Display Owner's Manual CD/Multimedia Select rear source □ Random Music data import/export

CDs/DVDs with compressed audio files: All tracks in the selected directory are played in random order.

Random mode is switched off when the audio source is changed and the ignition is switched off.

Fast forward/reverse

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Fast forward/reverse - 1

Press and hold the button.

Automatic repeat

The selected CDs or DVDs are repeated automatically.

Video playback

Country codes

Only DVDs with the code of the home region can be played back; also refer to the information on the DVD.

Code Region

1 USA, Canada
2 Japan, Europe, Middle East, South Africa
3 Southeast Asia
4 Australia, Central and South America, New Zealand
5 Northwest Asia, North Africa

Code Region

6 China

0 All regions

Playback

The video image is displayed on the front Control Display up to a speed of approx. 2 mph/3 km/h; in some countries, it is only displayed if the parking brake is set or if the automatic transmission is in position P.

DVD video

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "CD/DVD"
  3. Select a DVD with video content.

  4. "DMP menu"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - DVD video - 1

text_image DVD menu

VCD/SVCD

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "CD/DVD"
  3. Select a CD with video content.
  4. "Select track"
  5. Select the desired track.

Video menu

To open the video menu: turn the controller during playback.

Press the controller when "Back" is displayed.

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

Open the DVD menu.

▷ Start playback.

|| Pause

□ Stop

▷ Next chapter

Previous chapter

Fast forward

Reverse

In fast forward/reverse: the speed increases every time the controller is pressed. To stop, start playback.

DVD menu

  1. If necessary, turn the controller to open the video menu.
  2. "PMP menu"

The DVD menu is displayed. The display depends on the contents of the DVD.

  1. To select menu items: move the controller and press it.

To change to the video menu: turn the controller and press it.

DVD/VCD settings

For some DVDs, settings can only be made via the DVD menu; refer also to the information on the DVD.

Selecting the language

The languages that are available depend on the DVD.

  1. Turn the controller during playback.
  2. Open "Options".

3. "Audio/language"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - "Audio/language" - 1

text_image Options Switch off control display DVD video Display Owner's Manual Audio/language Subtitles Display settings Additional options
  1. Select the desired language.

Selecting the subtitles

The subtitles that are available depend on the DVD.

  1. Turn the controller during playback.
  2. Open "Options".
  3. "Subtitles"
  4. Select the desired language or "Do not display subtitles".

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting the subtitles - 1

text_image Subtitles Do not display subtitles ✓ German English

Setting the brightness, contrast and color

  1. Turn the controller during playback.
  2. Open "Options".
  3. "Display settings"

  4. "Brightness", "Contrast" or "Color"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Setting the brightness, contrast and color - 1

text_image Display settings Brightness Contrast Color
  1. Turn the controller until the desired setting is reached and press the controller.

Selecting the zoom

Display the video image on the entire screen.

  1. Turn the controller during playback.
  2. Open "Options".
  3. "Additional options"
  4. "Zoom mode"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting the zoom - 1

text_image Options □ Zoom mode Select title Viewing angle Main menu Back

Selecting a track

DVD video:

  1. Turn the controller when the DVD menu is displayed.
  2. Open "Options".
  3. "Additional options"
  4. "Select title"
  5. Select the desired track.
    VCD/SVCD:

  6. ≡ "Select track"

  7. Select the desired track.

Selecting the camera angle

The availability of a different camera angle depends on the DVD and the current DVD track.

  1. Turn the controller during playback.
  2. Open "Options".
  3. "Additional options"
  4. "Viewing angle"
  5. Select the desired camera angle.

Opening the main menu, back

These functions are not contained on every DVD. Therefore, they may not be available for use.

DVD changer

In the glove compartment
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - DVD changer - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing a car's side panel with a white arrow pointing to the passenger seat (no text or symbols visible)

Pull the handle.

Controls and displays
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - DVD changer - 2

text_image 1 2 3 4 2 5 DVD LOAD 1 2 3 4 5 6

1 Empty DVD compartments
2 LED on DVD slot
3 Buttons for DVD compartments

4 DVD slot
5 Fill DVD compartments

Filling the DVD compartments individually

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Filling the DVD compartments individually - 1

The LED on the first empty compartment flashes.

  1. Select another compartment if necessary.
  2. Wait for the LEDs on the DVD slot to flash.
  3. Insert a single CD or DVD in the middle.

The CD/DVD is drawn in automatically and placed into the selected compartment.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Filling the DVD compartments individually - 2

Sliding in CDs/DVDs

Do not insert the CD/DVD until the LEDs on the DVD slot are flashing; otherwise, the CD/DVD or the DVD changer could be damaged.

Do not continue to push on the CD/DVD; this may cause it to jam and prevent it from being able to eject again.

Filling all empty DVD compartments

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Filling all empty DVD compartments - 1

Hold the button down.

The LEDs on the empty CD compartments flash.

  1. Wait for the LEDs on the DVD slot to begin flashing and then insert each CD or DVD into the center of the slot.

The CDs/DVDs are drawn in automatically and placed into the vacant compartments.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Filling all empty DVD compartments - 2

Sliding in CDs/DVDs

Do not insert the CD/DVD until the LEDs on the DVD slot are flashing; otherwise, the CD/DVD or the DVD changer could be damaged.

Do not continue to push on the CD/DVD; this may cause it to jam and prevent it from being able to eject again.

After they are inserted, it may take several minutes for the CDs/DVDs to be read in.

Removing a single CD/DVD

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Removing a single CD/DVD - 1

s the button.

  1. Select the DVD compartment.

The CD/DVD is partially ejected.

  1. Remove the CD/DVD.

Removing all CDs/DVDs

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Removing all CDs/DVDs - 1

the button down.

  1. Remove the CDs/DVDs.

Malfunctions

If all LEDs on the DVD changer are flashing rapidly, a malfunction has occurred.

To eliminate the malfunction:

  1. Press one of the buttons:

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Malfunctions - 1

The CD/DVD last inserted is ejected.

  1. Remove the CD/DVD.

The DVD changer is functional again after the LEDs stop flashing rapidly.

Audio playback

The audio track of a DVD can be played back even if video playback is not possible in the vehicle.

Only the main film without the previews or extras can be played back.

Starting playback

A DVD is located in the DVD changer.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "CD/DVD"
  3. Select the desired DVD.

Selecting a chapter using the button

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting a chapter using the button - 1

Press the button repeatedly until the desired chapter is played.

Selecting a chapter using iDrive

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "CD/DVD"
  3. Select the desired DVD.
  4. Select the desired chapter.

Fast forward/reverse

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Fast forward/reverse - 1

Press and hold the button.

Selecting the language

The languages that are available depend on the DVD.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "CD/DVD"
  3. Select the desired DVD.
  4. Open "Options".
  5. "Audio/language"
  6. Select the desired language.

Notes

CD/DVD player and changer

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - CD/DVD player and changer - 1

Do not remove the cover

BMW CD/DVD players and changers are officially designated Class 1 laser products. Do not operate if the cover is damaged; otherwise, severe eye damage may occur.

CDs and DVDs

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - CDs and DVDs - 1

Use of CDs/DVDs

Do not use self-recorded CDs/DVDs with labels applied, as these can become detached during playback due to heat buildup and can cause irreparable damage to the device.

▶ Only use round CDs/DVDs with a standard diameter of 4.7 in/12 cm and do not play CDs/DVDs with an adapter, e.g., single CDs; otherwise, the CDs or the adapter may jam and no longer eject.
Do not use combined CDs/DVDs, e.g., DVD Plus, as the CDs/DVDs can jam and will no longer eject.

General malfunctions

CD/DVD changers and players have been optimized for performance in vehicles. In some instances they may be more sensitive to faulty CDs/DVDs than stationary devices would be.
▶ If a CD/DVD cannot be played, first check whether it has been inserted correctly.

Humidity

High levels of humidity can lead to condensation on the CD/DVD or the laser's scan lens, and temporarily prevent playback.

Malfunctions involving individual CDs/DVDs

If malfunctions occur only with particular CDs/DVDs, this can be due to one of the following causes:

Home-recorded CDs/DVDs

Possible reasons for malfunctions with home-recorded CDs/DVDs are inconsistent data creation or recording processes, or poor quality or old age of the blank CD/DVD.
▶ Only label CDs/DVDs on the upper side with a pen intended for this purpose.

Damage

  • Avoid fingerprints, dust, scratches and moisture.
    Store CDs/DVDs in a sleeve.
    Do not subject CDs/DVDs to temperatures over 122 °F/50 °C, high humidity or direct sunlight.

CDs/DVDs with copy protection

CDs/DVDs are often provided with a copy protection feature by the manufacturer. This can mean that some CDs/DVDs cannot be played or can only be played to a limited extent.

MACROVISION

This product contains copyrighted technology that is based on multiple registered US patents and the intellectual property of the Macrovision Corporation and other manufacturers. The use of this copy protection must be approved by Macrovision. Media protected by this product - unless otherwise agreed with Macrovision - may only be used for private purposes. Copying of this technology is prohibited.

DTS Digital Surround™

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - DTS Digital Surround™ - 1

Manufactured under license under U.S. Patent Numbers: 5,451,942;

5,956,674; 5,974,380; 5,978,762; 6,487,535 & and other patents granted and registered in the USA and worldwide. DTS and the logo are registered trademarks & DTS Digital Surround and the DTS logos are trademarks of DTS Inc. © DTS, Inc. All rights reserved.

Music collection

Storing music

General information

Music tracks from CDs/DVDs and USB devices can be stored in the music collection on a hard disc in the vehicle and played from there.

▶ Audio CD: tracks are converted into a compressed audio format. If available, information on the album, such as the artist, is stored as well.

▶ CD/DVD or USB device with compressed audio files: the entire content of the CD/DVD or the USB device is stored in the vehicle as an album. The WMA, MP3, M4A, and AAC formats are stored. Individual tracks and di-

rectories can be deleted later, Deleting a track and directory, refer to page 198.

Tracks with DRM copy protection can be stored but cannot be played back.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Backing up music data

Regularly back up the music data; otherwise, it could be lost if there is a fault on the hard disk.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 2

Music recognition technology and related data are provided by Gracenote®.

Gracenote is the industry standard in music recognition technology and related content delivery. For more information, please visit www.gracenote.com.

CD and music-related data from Gracenote, Inc., copyright © 2000-2009 Gracenote. Gracenote Software, copyright © 2000-2009 Gracenote. This product and service may practice one or more of the following U.S. Patents: #5,987,525; #6,061,680; #6,154,773, #6,161,132, #6,230,192, #6,230,207, #6,240,459, #6,330,593, and other patents issued or pending. Some services supplied under license from Open Globe, Inc. for U.S. Patent: #6,304,523.

Storing from a CD/DVD

  1. Insert a CD or DVD into the CD/DVD player.
  2. "CD/Multimedia"
  3. "CD/DVD"
  4. Select the symbol for the CD/DVD player.
  5. "Store in vehicle"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storing from a CD/DVD - 1

text_image Audio CD Unknown artist Unknown album 00:28 01/14 Store in vehicle Title 01 Title 02 Title 03

The music collection is displayed and the first track of the CD/DVD is played back. During the

storage process, the tracks are played in sequence.

Observe the following during the storage process:

Do not switch to the CD/DVD player and do not remove the CD/DVD from the CD/DVD player as this will interrupt the storage process. You can switch to the other audio sources without interrupting the storage process. Tracks from the current CD/DVD that have already been stored can be called up.

Interrupting storage

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "CD/DVD"
  3. "Storing..."

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Interrupting storage - 1

text_image CD/DVD Storing... Best off Brothers in arms Mezzanine Audio CD Reload Beautiful
  1. "Cancel storing"

The storage process is interrupted and can be continued at any time.

Continuing the storage process

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "CD/DVD"
  3. Select the symbol for the CD/DVD player.
  4. "Continue storing"

Storage of the CD/DVD continues at the beginning of the track at which storage was interrupted.

Album information

During storage, information such as the name of the artist is stored with the track, if this information is available in the vehicle database or on the CD.

To update the database, contact your service center.

Storing from a USB device

To store music, a suitable device must be connected to the USB interface in the glove compartment.

Suitable devices: USB mass storage devices, such as USB flash drives or MP3 players with a USB interface.
▶ Unsuitable devices: USB hard drives, USB hubs, USB memory card readers with multiple inserts, Apple iPod/iPhone. Music from the Apple iPod/iPhone can be played via the USB audio interface in the center armrest.

  1. Connect the USB device to the USB interface in the glove compartment, refer to page 141.
  2. "CD/Multimedia"
  3. "Music collection"
  4. Open "Options".
  5. "Music data import/export"
  6. "Import music (USB)"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Storing from a USB device - 1

text_image Import/export (USB) Import music (USB) Music collection management Backup music on USB Restore music from USB

Playing music

All tracks for which additional information has been stored can be accessed by the music search. Tracks without additional information

can be called up via the corresponding album, refer to page 197.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"
  3. "Music search"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Music search - 1

text_image Music collection Music search Current playback Top 50 Audio-CD 1 Frank USB 1 LIEBLINGSSONGS
  1. Select the desired category.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Music search - 2

text_image Music search Genre? (All genres) All artists All albums All titles Start play New search
  1. Select the desired entry:

▶ Select "A-Z search", refer to page 21, and input the desired entry.
▶ Select the desired entry from the list.

  1. Select other categories if you wish.

The tracks found are listed in alphabetical order.

Not all categories need to be selected. For example, to search for all tracks by a certain artist, call up that artist only. All of the tracks by that artist are then displayed.

  1. "Start play"

The list of tracks is repeated automatically.

"New search"

Music search using spoken instructions

Instructions for the voice activation system, refer to page 22.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Music search using spoken instructions - 1

he button on the steering

  1. »Music search«
  2. Open the desired category, e.g., >Select artist>.
  3. Say the desired entry in the list.
  4. Select other categories if you wish.

To select a track directly: >Title ...<.

Say the voice command and the name of the desired track in a single command.

Current playback

The list of tracks that was generated last by the music search, or the album that was selected last.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"
  3. "Current playback"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Current playback - 1

text_image Music collection Music search Current playback Top 50 50 Audio-CD 1 ✓ Frank USB 1 LIEBLINGSSONGS
  1. Select the desired track, if necessary.

Top 50

The 50 most frequently played tracks.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"
  3. "Top 50"
  4. Select the desired track, if necessary.

Albums

All stored albums, listed in order of their storage dates.

Symbol Format

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Format - 1

Audio CD

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Format - 2

Compressed audio files

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"
  3. Select the desired album.

Depending on the album, the tracks or the subdirectories of the album are displayed. The first track is played automatically, if possible.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Format - 3

text_image Music collection Music search Current playback Top 50 50 Audio-CD 1 Hits Frank LIEBLINGSSONGS
  1. Change directories if needed to select tracks.

To go up a level in the directory: move the controller to the left.

Random playback

All tracks of the selection are played back in random order.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"

  3. Open "Options".

  4. "Random"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Random playback - 1

text_image Options Display Owner's Manual Free memory Delete music collection CD/Multimedia Select rear source Random Music data import/export

Managing music

Albums

Renaming an album

The name of the album, if available, is automatically entered when the album is stored. If the name is not available, it can be changed later if desired.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"
  3. Highlight the desired album.
  4. Open "Options".
  5. "Rename album"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Renaming an album - 1

text_image Options Audio-CD 1 Rename album Delete album Music collection Display Owner's Manual Free memory Delete music collection
  1. Select the letters individually.

Deleting an album

An album cannot be deleted while a track from that album is being played.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"
  3. Highlight the desired album.
  4. Open "Options".
  5. "Delete album"

Deleting a track and directory

A track cannot be deleted while it is being played.

A directory cannot be deleted while a track from that directory is being played.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"
  3. Highlight the directory or track.
  4. Open "Options".
  5. "Delete folder" or "Delete track"

Free memory capacity

Display the free memory capacity in the music collection.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"
  3. Open "Options".
  4. "Free memory"

Music collection

Backing up the music collection

The entire music collection can be stored on a USB device. Make sure there is enough free memory capacity on the USB device.

Depending on the number of tracks, backing up the music collection may take several hours. Therefore, it is best to perform the backup during a long trip.

  1. Starting the engine.
  2. Connect the USB device to the USB interface in the glove compartment.
  3. "CD/Multimedia"
  4. "Music collection"
  5. Open "Options".
  6. "Music data import/export"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Backing up the music collection - 1

text_image Options Display Owner's Manual Free memory Delete music collection CD/Multimedia Select rear source Random Music data import/export
  1. "Backup music on USB"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Backing up the music collection - 2

text_image Import/export (USB) Import music (USB) Music collection management Backup music on USB Restore music from USB

Storing the music collection in the vehicle

When storing from the USB device, the existing music collection in the vehicle is replaced.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"
  3. Open "Options".
  4. "Music data import/export"
  5. "Restore music from USB"

Deleting the music collection

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Music collection"
  3. Open "Options".
  4. "Delete music collection"

External devices

At a glance

Symbol Meaning

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - At a glance - 1

AUX-IN port

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - At a glance - 2

USB audio interface

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - At a glance - 3

Mobile phone audio interface

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - At a glance - 4

Bluetooth audio

AUX-IN port

At a glance

For connecting audio devices, e.g., MP3 player. The sound is output on the vehicle loudspeakers.
▶ Recommendation: use medium tone and volume settings on the audio device. The tone depends on the quality of the audio files.

Connecting

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Connecting - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard showing the intake manifold and control panel (no text or symbols visible)

The AUX-IN port is located in the center armrest.

Connect the headphones or line-out connector of the device to the jack plug.

Playback

  1. Connect the audio device, switch it on and select a track on the audio device.
  2. "CD/Multimedia"
  3. If necessary "External devices".
  4. "AUX front"

Volume

The volume of the sound output is dependent on the audio device. If this volume differs markedly from the volume of the other audio sources, it is advisable to adjust the volumes.

Adjusting the volume

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. If necessary "External devices".
  3. "AUX front"
  4. "Volume"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adjusting the volume - 1

text_image AUX front AUX active Volume - +
  1. Turn the controller until the desired volume is set and press the controller.

USB audio interface/mobile phone audio interface

At a glance

It is possible to connect external audio devices. They can be operated via iDrive. The sound is output on the vehicle loudspeakers.

Connectors for external devices

▶ Connection via USB audio interface: Apple iPod/iPhone, USB devices, e.g., MP3 play-

ers, USB flash drives, or mobile phones that are supported by the USB audio interface.

▶ Connection via snap-in adapter when equipped with extended connectivity of the music player in the mobile phone: Apple iPhone or mobile phones.

Due to the large number of different audio devices available on the market, it cannot be ensured that every audio device/mobile phone is operable on the vehicle.

Ask your service center about suitable audio devices/mobile phones.

Audio files

Standard audio files can be played back:

MP3.
WMA.
▶ WAV (PCM).
▷ AAC, M4A.
▶ Playback lists: M3U, WPL, PLS.

Connection of Apple iPod/iPhone via USB audio interface

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Connection of Apple iPod/iPhone via USB audio interface - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard and seat area showing the intake manifold and control panel (no text or symbols visible)

USB audio interface is located in the center arm-rest.

Connect using a flexible adapter cable.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Connection of Apple iPod/iPhone via USB audio interface - 2

Connect the Apple iPod/iPhone to the USB interface.

The Apple iPod/iPhone menu structure is supported by the USB audio interface.

Connection of a USB device via the USB audio interface

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Connection of a USB device via the USB audio interface - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard showing the intake manifold and control panel (no text or symbols visible)

USB audio interface is located in the center arm-rest.

Connect using a flexible adapter cable to protect the USB audio interface and the USB device against physical damage.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Connection of a USB device via the USB audio interface - 2

Connect the USB device to the USB interface.

After connecting for the first time

Information on all music tracks, e.g. artist or type of music, as well as playback lists are transmitted into the vehicle. This may take some time, depending on the USB device and the number of tracks.

During transmission, the tracks can be called up via the file directory.

Number of tracks

Information from up to four USB devices or for approx. 36,000 tracks can be stored in the vehicle. If a fifth device is connected or if more than 36,000 tracks are stored, information on existing music tracks may be deleted.

Copy protection

Music tracks with integrated Digital Rights Management (DRM) cannot be played.

Playback

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "External devices"
  3. Select the or symbol.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Playback - 1

text_image External devices JUKEBOX Handy Gerät AUX front

The playback starts with the first track.

On the split screen, the CD cover for the music track might be displayed after a few seconds.

Selection is possible via:

▶ Playback lists.
▶ Information: type of music, artist, and, if available, composer, album, track.
In addition, for USB devices: file directory and, if available, composer.

Tracks are displayed if they have been saved in the Latin alphabet.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "External devices"
  3. Select the or symbol.
  4. "Search"
  5. Select the desired category, e.g., "Genre" or "Artist".

All entries are displayed in a list.

▶ Open "A-Z search" and input the desired entry. When a letter is entered, the results are filtered using this letter as the first letter. If multiple letters are entered, all results that contain that sequence are displayed.

▶ Select the desired entry from the list.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting the track search - 1

text_image USB audio: JUKEBOX Browse directory Genre? (All genres) All artists All composers All albums All tracks Start play
  1. Select other categories if you wish.

Not all categories need to be selected. For example, if all of the tracks by a certain artist are to be displayed, call up that artist only. All of the tracks by that artist are then displayed.

  1. "Start play"

"New search"

Playback lists

Calling up playback lists.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "External devices"
  3. Select the or symbol.
  4. "Playlists"

Current playback

List of tracks currently being played.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "External devices"
  3. Select the or symbol.
  4. "Current playback"

Random playback

The current list of tracks is played back in random order.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "External devices"

  3. "Options" Open.

  4. "Random"

Fast forward/reverse

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Fast forward/reverse - 1

Press and hold the button.

Video playback

At a glance

Video playback via snap-in adapter is possible. Operation can be performed via iDrive. The sound is output on the vehicle loudspeakers.

Playback

The video image is displayed on the front Control Display up to a speed of approx. 2 mph/3 km/h; in some countries, it is only displayed if the parking brake is set or if the automatic transmission is in position P.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "External devices"
  3. Select the symbol.
  4. "Video"
  5. Select the directory if necessary.

To go up a level in the directory: move the controller to the left.

  1. Select the desired video file to begin play-back.

Video menu

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Video menu - 1

Next video file

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Video menu - 2

Previous video file

Double-click on an icon to play back previous video file.

Notes

Do not expose the audio device to extreme environmental conditions, such as very high temperatures; refer to the audio device operating instructions.

Depending on the configuration of the audio files, e.g., bit rates greater than 256 kbit/s, the files may not play back correctly in each case.

Information on connection

The connected audio device is supplied with a max. power of 500 mA if supported by the device. Therefore, do not additionally connect the device to a socket in the vehicle; otherwise, playback may be compromised.
Do not use force when plugging the connector into the USB interface.
Do not connect devices such as fans or lamps to the USB audio interface.
Do not connect USB hard drives.
Do not use the USB audio interface to recharge external devices.

Bluetooth audio

At a glance

▶ Music files on external devices such as audio devices or mobile phones can be played back via Bluetooth.
Use of a mobile phone as an audio source, refer to page 211.
The sound is output on the vehicle loudspeakers.
The volume of the sound output is dependent on the device. If necessary, adjust the volume on the device.
▶ Up to four external devices can be paired with the vehicle.

Requirements

The device is suitable. Information under www.bmwusa.com/bluetooth.
The device is ready for operation.
The ignition is switched on.

Bluetooth is activated on the vehicle, refer to page 211, and on the device.
Bluetooth presettings must be made on the device, such as for a connection without confirmation or visibility; refer to the device operating instructions.
A number with at least four and a maximum of 16 digits is defined as the Bluetooth pass-key. It is only required once for pairing.

Pairing and connecting

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pairing and connecting - 1

Pairing a device

To avoid becoming distracted and posing an unnecessary hazard both to your own vehicle's occupants and to other road users, only pair the device while the vehicle is stationary.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Bluetooth® (audio)"
  3. If necessary, "Bluetooth® audio".
  4. "Add new phone"

The Bluetooth name of the vehicle is displayed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pairing a device - 1

text_image Bluetooth® (audio) Add new phone Connected: Handy 1 Paired: Gerät 1
  1. Perform additional steps on the device, refer to the device operating instructions: e.g. search for or connect the Bluetooth device or a new device.

The Bluetooth name of the vehicle appears on the device display.

  1. Select the Bluetooth name of the vehicle on the device display.

Prompt via iDrive or the device to enter the same Bluetooth passkey.

  1. Enter the passkey and confirm.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pairing a device - 2

text_image Enter same passkey for vehicle and Bluetooth@ phone.
  1. Select the desired functions with which the device is to be connected, e.g. "Audio".

  2. "OK"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pairing a device - 3

text_image Bluetooth® function Functions of the device : ✓ Telephone ✓ Audio OK

If pairing was successful, the device is displayed as connected.

White symbol♪: the device is active as an audio source.

If pairing was unsuccessful: What to do if..., refer to page 205.

Connecting a specific device

A device that has already been paired can be connected as an active audio source.

Connecting is not possible when data is exchanged via a mobile phone connected via Bluetooth.

Requirements

If necessary, activate the audio connection of the desired device from the list of paired devices.

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Bluetooth® (audio)"

  3. If necessary, "Bluetooth® audio".

  4. Select the desired device from the list of paired devices.
  5. "Options" Open.
  6. "Configure phone"
  7. "Audio"
  8. "OK"

Connecting the device

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Bluetooth® (audio)"
  3. If necessary, "Bluetooth® audio".
  4. Select the desired device from the list of paired devices.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Connecting the device - 1

text_image Bluetooth® (audio) Add new phone Connected: Handy 1 Paired: Gerät 1

White symbol ⌘: the device is active as an audio source.

Playback

General information

The display of music track information depends on the device.
▶ Operation can takes place on the device or iDrive.
▶ Playback is interrupted when data is exchanged via a mobile phone connected via Bluetooth.

Starting playback

  1. Connect the device.
  2. "CD/Multimedia"
  3. "External devices"

4. Select the symbol.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Select the symbol. - 1

text_image External devices JUKEBOX Handy ✓ ⭕ Gerät AUX front
  1. Select the desired track from the list, if necessary.

Playback menu

Depending on the particular device, some of the functions may not be available.

Symbol Function

▷ Next track

Fast forward: press and hold the symbol.

Previous music track

Reverse: press and hold the symbol.

Disconnecting the audio connection

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Bluetooth® (audio)"
  3. Highlight the desired device.
  4. Open "Options".
  5. "Configure phone"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Disconnecting the audio connection - 1

text_image Options ✓ Split screen Switch off control display Gerät 2 Configure phone Remove phone from list Bluetooth® (audio) Display Owner's Manual
  1. "Audio"
  2. "OK"

Unpairing a device

  1. "CD/Multimedia"
  2. "Bluetooth® (audio)"
  3. If necessary, "Bluetooth® audio".
  4. Highlight the device that is to be unpaired.
  5. Open "Options".
  6. "Remove phone from list"

What to do if...

Information on suitable devices can be found at www.bmwusa.com/bluetooth.

Suitable mobile phones, refer to page 210.

The device is not supported by the vehicle.

▶ Perform a software update, refer to page 205, if needed.

The device could not be paired or connected.

Do the Bluetooth passkeys on the device and the vehicle match? Enter the same passkey on the device and via iDrive.

Did it take longer than 30 seconds to enter the passkey? Repeat the pairing procedure.

Are too many Bluetooth devices connected to the device or vehicle? Delete connections with other devices if necessary.

Is the mobile phone in power-save mode or does it have only a limited remaining battery life? Charge the mobile phone in the snap-in adapter or via the charging cable.

▶ Depending on the mobile phone, it is possible that only one device can be connected to the vehicle. Unpair the connected device from the vehicle and pair and connect only one device.

The device no longer reacts? Switch the device off and on again.

▶ Repeat the pairing procedure.

Music cannot be played back.

▶ Start the program for playing back music data on the device and select a track on the device if necessary.

▶ Switch the radio off and on again.

Music files can only be played back softly.

▶ Adjust the volume settings on the device.
Playback is disturbed when buttons are pressed or by other messages on the device.
▶ Switch off the button tones and other signal tones on the device.

Playback is interrupted by a telephone call or traffic bulletin and is not resumed automatically.

▶ Switch the radio off and on again.

Playback is not possible if the mobile phone is connected both via Bluetooth Audio and via the extended connectivity of the music player in the mobile phone.

▷ Disconnect one of the two connections; for example, disconnect the audio connection, refer to page 204, and restart playback.

If all points in this list have been checked and the required function is still not available, please contact the hotline or service center.

Software Update

The vehicle supports various external devices depending on the current software version. With a software update, the vehicle can support new cell phones or new external devices.

The updating of the software is done via:

▶ USB.

Updates and related current information is available at www.bmw.com/update.

Displaying the current version

The currently installed software is displayed.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Software update"
  3. "Show current version"

SelectDesired version to displayAdditional information.

Updating software via USB

The software may only be updated when the vehicle is stationary.

  1. Store the file for the software-update in the main director of a USB flash drive.
  2. Insert the USB flash drive into the USB interface of the USB audio interface in the center armrest. An update via the USB interface in the glove compartment is not possible.
  3. "Settings"
  4. "Software update"
  5. "Update software"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Updating software via USB - 1

text_image Software update Software update for the support of external devices. Show current version Update software Restore previous version
  1. "Start update"

  2. "OK"

All listed software updates are installed.

Restoring the previous version

If it should become necessary, the software version prior to the last software update can be restored.

The previous version may only be restored when the vehicle is stationary.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Software update"
  3. "Restore previous version"
  4. "OK" Double-click.
    All listed software updates are removed.

Note

While the software is being updated or a previous version is being restoredBMW Assist, Office

functions and the connected devices are temporarily unavailable. Wait several minutes for the functions to become available again.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Note - 1

text_image TELEPHONE TELEPHONE Online Edition for Part no: 01 40 2 607 971 - 09 11 490

Communication

All of the options available to you for mobile communication with family, friends, business partners, and service providers are described in this chapter.

Telephone

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

At a glance

The concept

Mobile phones or other external devices such as audio players can be connected to the vehicle via Bluetooth.

After these devices are paired once, they are recognized automatically when the ignition is switched on as soon as they are inside the vehicle and can be operated via iDrive, the buttons on the steering wheel, and via voice activation.

Depending on their functionality, external devices can be used via the vehicle as a telephone or as an audio source.

The telephone functions are described in the following. Operation of the audio functions, refer to page 202.

Up to four external devices can be paired.

Certain functions may need to be enabled by the mobile phone provider or service provider.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - The concept - 1

Using the mobile phone while driving

Make entries only when traffic and road conditions allow. Do not hold the mobile phone in your hand while you are driving; use the hands-free system instead. If you do not observe this precaution, you can endanger the vehicle occupants and other road users.

Snap-in adapter

The snap-in adapter is used to:

Hold the mobile phone.

▶ Recharge the battery.

▷ Connect the mobile phone to an outside antenna of the vehicle.

This provides for better network reception and consistent sound quality.

Approved mobile phones

Details on which mobile phones and external devices with a Bluetooth interface are supported by the mobile phone preparation package can be obtained at www.bmwusa.com/bluetooth.

Displaying the vehicle identification number and software part number

The vehicle identification number and software part number are needed to determine which mobile phones are supported by the mobile phone preparation package. The software version of the mobile phone may also be required.

  1. "Telephone"
  2. Open "Options".
  3. "Bluetooth® info"
  4. "Display system information"

These approved mobile phones with a certain software version, support the vehicle functions described below.

Malfunctions may occur with other mobile phones or software versions.

Do not operate a mobile phone that is connected to the vehicle on the mobile phone keypad, as this may lead to a malfunction.

A software update can be performed if necessary.

Notes

At high temperatures, the charge function of the mobile phone can be limited where appropriate and the functions are no longer executed.

When the mobile phone is used via the vehicle, heed the operating manual of the mobile phone.

Pairing/unpairing the mobile phone

General information

The following functions are available:

▶ Use of a mobile phone as a telephone.
▶ Use of a mobile phone as an additional telephone.
▶ Use of a mobile phone as an audio source.
▶ Use of an audio device as an audio source, refer to page 203.

Requirements

The mobile phone is suitable.
The mobile phone is ready for operation.
▶ Bluetooth is activated in the vehicle and on the mobile phone.
▶ Bluetooth presettings may need to be made on the mobile phone, e.g., for a connection without confirmation or visibility, refer to the mobile phone operating instructions.
▶ Deactivate Bluetooth audio if necessary.
A number with at least four and a maximum of 16 digits was defined as the Bluetooth passkey. It is only required once for pairing.
The ignition is switched on.

Activating/deactivating Bluetooth

Bluetooth is not permitted everywhere. Comply with all safety guidelines and regulations.

  1. "Telephone"
  2. "Options" Open.
  3. "Bluetooth®"

Additional functions

Activating/deactivating the additional functions

Activate the functions before pairing to be able to use them in the vehicle. Information on suitable mobile phones, refer to page 210, that support these functions.

  1. "Telephone"
  2. "Bluetooth® (phone)"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Configure Bluetooth®"
  5. Select the desired additional function.

▶ "Additional telephone"
"Office"
▶ "Bluetooth® audio"

  1. "OK"

As long as an additional function is deactivated, it cannot be assigned to a telephone.

Additional telephone

A mobile phone can be used as an additional telephone.

The additional telephone can be used to accept incoming calls, refer to page 214. While a call is active on the additional telephone, incoming calls are displayed on the Control Display.

Audio source

A mobile phone can be used as an audio source.

Pairing and connecting cell phone

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pairing and connecting cell phone - 1

Pairing the mobile phone

To avoid becoming distracted and posing an unnecessary hazard both to your own vehicle's occupants and to other road users, only pair the mobile phone while the vehicle is stationary.

  1. "Telephone"
  2. "Bluetooth® (phone)"

  3. "Add new phone"

The Bluetooth name of the vehicle is displayed.

  1. To perform additional steps on the mobile phone, refer to the mobile phone operating instructions: e.g. search for or connect the Bluetooth device or a new device.

The Bluetooth name of the vehicle appears on the mobile phone display.

  1. Select the Bluetooth name of the vehicle on the mobile phone display.

Prompt via iDrive or the mobile phone to enter the same Bluetooth passkey.

  1. Enter the passkey and confirm.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Pairing and connecting cell phone - 2

text_image Enter same passkey for vehicle and Bluetooth@ phone.
  1. Select the functions for which the mobile phone is to be used.

  2. "OK"

If the pairing was successful, the mobile phone appears at the top of the list of mobile phones.

The functions supported by the mobile phone and audio device are displayed as symbols when paired.

White symbol: the function is active.

Gray symbol: the function is inactive.

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

Telephone.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 2

Additional telephone.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 3

Audio source.

Four mobile phones can be paired with the vehicle at once. Three mobile phones can be connected with the vehicle at once.

If pairing was unsuccessful: What to do if..., refer to page 213.

Following the initial pairing

The mobile phone is detected/connected in the vehicle within a short period of time when the engine is running or the ignition is switched on.
The phone book entries of the telephone stored on the SIM card or mobile phone are transmitted to the vehicle after detection, depending on the mobile phone.
▶ Four mobile phones can be paired.
▶ Specific settings may be necessary in some mobile phones, e.g., authorization or a secure connection; refer to the mobile phone operating instructions.

Connecting a particular mobile phone

If more than one mobile phone is detected by the vehicle, the mobile phone at the top of the list is connected. If a different detected cell phone is connected with the vehicle. A different mobile phone can be connected by selecting it.

  1. "Telephone"
  2. "Bluetooth® (phone)"
  3. Select the mobile phone that is to be connected.

The functions assigned to the mobile phone before unpairing are assigned to the mobile phone when it is reconnected. If the mobile phone is already connected, these functions are deactivated.

Configuring cell phone

Additional functions can be activated or deactivated for paired and connected mobile phones.

  1. "Telephone"
  2. "Bluetooth® (phone)"

  3. Highlight the mobile phone to be configured.

  4. "Options" Open.
  5. "Configure phone"
  6. At least one function must be selected.

"Telephone"
▶ "Additional telephone"
▶ "Audio"

7. "OK"

If a function is assigned to a mobile phone, the function will be deactivated where appropriate for a mobile phone that is already connected and the mobile phone will be unpaired.

Swapping the telephone and additional telephone

The function of the telephone and additional telephone can be swapped automatically.

  1. "Telephone"
  2. "Bluetooth® (phone)"
  3. "Swap phone/addit. phone"

Unpairing the mobile phone

  1. "Telephone"
  2. "Bluetooth® (phone)"
  3. Highlight the mobile phone that is to be unpaired.
  4. "Options" Open.
  5. "Remove phone from list"

What to do if...

Information on suitable mobile phones, refer to page 210.

The mobile phone could not be paired or connected.

▷ Is Bluetooth activated in the vehicle and on the mobile phone? Activate Bluetooth in the vehicle and on the mobile phone.
Do the Bluetooth passkeys on the mobile phone and the vehicle match? Enter the

same passkey on the mobile phone and via iDrive.

Did it take longer than 30 seconds to enter the passkey? Repeat the pairing procedure.
Are too many Bluetooth devices connected to the mobile phone or vehicle? Delete connections with other devices if necessary.
▷ Is the audio connection activated? Deactivate the audio connection.
Is the mobile phone in power-save mode or does it have only a limited remaining battery life? Charge the mobile phone in the snap-in adapter or via the charging cable.
▶ Depending on the mobile phone, it is possible that only one cell phone can be connected to the vehicle. Unpair the connected cell phone from the vehicle and pair and connect only one cell phone.

The mobile phone no longer reacts.

▷ Switch the mobile phone off and on again.
▶ Ambient temperatures too high or too low? Do not subject the mobile phone to extreme ambient temperatures.

The telephone functions are not available.

▷ Is the mobile phone paired as an additional telephone and is the additional telephone function deactivated? Activate the function.
Is an outgoing call not possible? Connect the mobile phone as a telephone.

No or not all phone book entries are displayed, or they are incomplete.

▶ Transmission of the phone book entries is not yet complete.
It is possible that only the phone book entries of the mobile phone or the SIM card are transmitted.
It may not be possible to display phone book entries with special characters.
The number of phone book entries being stored is too high.
▷ Is the data volume of the contact too large, e.g., due to stored information such as

notes? Reduce the data volume of the contact.

Is the mobile phone connected as an audio source or additional telephone? The mobile phone must be connected as a telephone.
The phone connection quality is poor.
The strength of the Bluetooth signal on the mobile phone can be adjusted, depending on the mobile phone.
▶ Insert the mobile phone into the snap-in adapter or place it in the area of the center console.
Adjust the volume of the microphone and loudspeakers separately.

If all points in this list have been checked and the required function is still not available, contact the hotline or service center.

Controls

Adjusting the volume

Turn the knob until the desired volume is selected. The setting is stored for the remote control currently in use.

The vehicle automatically adjusts the volume of the microphone on the telephone and the volume of the called party. Depending on the mobile phone, the volumes may need to be adjusted. The settings can only be created during a call and must be adjusted separately for each telephone. The settings are deleted when the telephone is unpaired.

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Tone"
  3. "Volume settings"
  4. Select the desired setting: "Microphone" or "Loudspeak."
  5. To adjust: turn the controller.
  6. To store: press the controller.

Incoming call

Receiving calls

If the number of the caller is stored in the phone book and is transmitted by the network, the name of the contact is displayed. Otherwise, only the phone number is displayed.

If more than one phone number is assigned to a contact, only the name of the contact is displayed.

For calls on the additional telephone, the number is only displayed if it is transmitted by the network.

An incoming call to the additional telephone is automatically rejected if there is an active call on the other telephone.

Accepting a call

Via iDrive

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Via iDrive - 1

"Accept"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Via iDrive - 2

text_image Incoming call Accept +4989123456789 calling Device: Handy 1

Via the button on the steering wheel

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Via the button on the steering wheel - 1

Press the button.

Via the instrument cluster

"Accept"

Rejecting a call

Via iDrive

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Via iDrive - 1

"Reject"

Via the instrument cluster

"Reject"

Ending a call

Via iDrive

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Via iDrive - 1

"End call"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Via iDrive - 2

text_image Active calls End call +4989123456789 00:55

Via the button on the steering wheel

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Via the button on the steering wheel - 1

Press the button.

Via the instrument cluster

"End call"

Entering a phone number

Dialing a number

When entering phone numbers, you can switch between entering letters and numbers.

Service numbers can be entered more easily, e. g. 1-888-BMW-CARD.

  1. "Telephone"
  2. "Dial number"

3. Select the digits individually.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Select the digits individually. - 1

text_image 08912 ABC

4. Convert to letters as required.

A^B_C Select the symbol.

Select the letters individually.

5. Select the symbol.

1^23 Select symbol to convert to numbers.

The phone number can also be entered by voice. Only numbers can be spoken.

Letter/number assignment

Letter Number

ABC 2
DEF 3
GHI 4
JKL 5
MNO 6
PQRS 7
TUV 8
WXYZ 9

Calls with multiple participants

General information

You can switch between calls or connect two calls to a single conference call. These functions must be supported by the mobile phone and service provider.

Accepting a call while speaking to another party

This function might have to be activated by the service provider and the mobile phone must be adjusted accordingly.

If a second call comes in during an ongoing call, a call waiting signal is sounded where appropriate.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Accepting a call while speaking to another party - 1

"Accept"

The call is accepted and the existing call is put on hold.

Establishing a second call

Establish an additional call during an active call.

  1. "Telephone"

  2. "Active calls"

  3. "Hold"

The existing call is put on hold.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Establishing a second call - 1

text_image Active calls Hold 23456789 01:03
  1. Dial the new phone number or select it from a list.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Establishing a second call - 2

"Return"

The call on hold is resumed.

Switching between two calls, hold call

The active call is displayed in color.

The call on hold is displayed in gray.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Switching between two calls, hold call - 1

"Swap calls"

The call on hold is resumed.

Establishing a conference call

Two calls can be connected to a single telephone conference call.

  1. Establish two calls.

  2. "Conference call"

When terminating a conference call, both calls are ended. If one call is terminated by another party, the other call can be continued.

Switching the microphone to mute

When a call is active, the microphone can be muted.

  1. "Telephone"

  2. "Active calls"

  3. "Microphone mute"

A microphone that has been switched to mute is automatically reactivated:

When a new connection is established.

▶ When switching between call parties.

DTMF suffix dialing

DTMF suffix dialing can be used for gaining access to network services or for controlling devices, e.g., to make a remote inquiry of an answering machine. The DTMF code is needed for this purpose.

  1. "Telephone"

  2. Select the contact from a list or "Dial number".

  3. "Keypad dialing"

  4. Enter the DTMF code via iDrive.

Phone book

Displays

The phone book accesses the contacts and shows all contacts for which a phone number has been stored. The entries can be selected to make a call.

  1. "Telephone"

2. "Phone book"

A symbol indicates the storage location of the contacts.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - "Phone book" - 1

text_image Phone book A-Z search Angi BMW Service Christoph Dr. Tom Mustermann Office

Calling a contact

Symbol Meaning

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 1

Contact with one stored phone number.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 2

Contact with more than one stored phone number.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Meaning - 3

Call not possible; mobile phone without reception or network, or Service Request is active.

For contacts with one stored phone number: select the required contact. The connection is established.

For contacts with more than one stored phone number: select the required contact and the phone number. The connection is established.

Editing a contact

Changing the entries in "Contacts". When a contact is changed, the changes are not stored on the mobile phone. A copy of the entry is stored in the vehicle.

  1. Highlight the contact.

  2. Open "Options".

  3. "Edit entry"

The contact can be edited.

Redialing

General information

The list of dialed numbers in the mobile phone is transmitted to the vehicle depending on the mobile phone. The 20 phone numbers dialed last are displayed. The sorting order of the phone numbers depends on the particular mobile phone.

Dialing the number via the instrument cluster

This is possible when there is no active call.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Dialing the number via the instrument cluster - 1

Press the button on the steering

  1. Select the desired phone number.

The connection is established.

Dialing a number via iDrive

  1. "Telephone"

  2. "Redial"

  3. Select the desired entry and the phone number if necessary.

The connection is established.

Deleting a single entry or all entries

The erasure of entries depends on the mobile phone.

  1. Highlight the entry.

  2. "Options" Open.

  3. "Delete entry" or "Delete list"

Saving an entry in the contacts

  1. Highlight the entry.

  2. "Options" Open.

  3. "Store as new contact" or "Add to existing contact"

  4. Select the type of number: "Home", "Business", "Mobile" or "Other"

  5. Complete the entries if necessary.

  6. If necessary, "Store contact in vehicle".

Received calls

Displaying calls

The 20 calls that were last received are displayed.

  1. "Telephone"
  2. "Received calls"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displaying calls - 1

text_image Telephone Active calls Phone book Redial ✓ Received calls Dial number Messages Bluetooth® (phone)

Calling a number from the list

Selecting an entry.

The connection is established.

Deleting a single entry or all entries

The erasure of entries depends on the mobile phone.

  1. Highlight the entry.
  2. "Options" Open.
  3. "Delete entry" or "Delete list"

Saving an entry in the contacts

  1. Highlight the entry.
  2. "Options" Open.
  3. "Store as new contact" or "Add to existing contact"
  4. Select the type of number: "Home", "Business", "Mobile" or "Other"
  5. Complete the entries if necessary.
  6. If necessary, "Store contact in vehicle".

Hands-free system

General information

Calls that are being made on the hands-free system can be continued on the mobile phone and vice versa.

From the mobile phone to the hands-free system

Calls that were begun outside of the Bluetooth range of the vehicle can be continued on the hands-free system with the ignition switched on.

Depending on the mobile phone, the system automatically switches to the hands-free system.

If the system does not switch over automatically, follow the instructions on the mobile phone display; refer also to the mobile phone operating instructions.

From the hands-free system to the mobile phone

Calls that are made on the hands-free system can in some cases be continued on the mobile phone; this depends on the mobile phone.

Follow the instructions on the mobile phone display; refer also to the mobile phone operating instructions.

Voice operation

Vehicles equipped with the voice activation system: operation, refer to page 22.

Vehicles not equipped with the voice activation system: depending on the equipment, the mobile phone can be voice operated as described below.

The list of short commands in the Owner's Manual does not apply to this type of voice operation.

The concept

The mobile phone can be operated without taking your hands from the steering wheel.
In many cases, the entries are accompanied by announcements or questions.
▷ >...< Verbal instructions for voice operation.

Using voice activation

Activating the voice activation system

  1. Press the button on the steering wheel.
  2. Say the command.

Terminating the voice activation system

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Terminating the voice activation system - 1

Briefly press the button on the steering wheel or >Cancel.

Possible commands

Having possible commands read aloud

Press the button. »Help«. Possible commands are announced.

The digits from zero to nine are recognized. The digits can be spoken separately or combined in a sequence to accelerate the entry.

Using alternative commands

The system often recognizes a number of different commands to run a function; for instance: »Dial name« or »Name«

Example: dialing a phone number

Briefly press the button on the
steering wheel.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Example: dialing a phone number - 1

  1. »Dial number«

The system says: »Please say the number«

  1. E.g., >123 456 790

The system says: »123 456 790. Continue?

«

  1. Dialk

The system says: »Dialing number«

Calling

Dialing a phone number

  1. »Dial number«
  2. Say the phone number.
  3. Dial

Correcting the phone number

The sequence of digits can be deleted after the system has repeated the digits.

Correct number

The command can be repeated as often as necessary.

Deleting a phone number

Delete<

All digits entered up to that point are deleted.

Redialing

Redial

Voice phone book

Depending on how your vehicle is equipped, it may be necessary to create your own voice phone book.

The entries must be entered using voice activation and are separate from the memory in the mobile phone. Up to 50 entries can be set up.

Saving an entry

  1. »Save name«
  2. Say the name. Do not exceed the speaking duration of approx. 2 seconds.
  3. Say the phone number after being prompted to do so by the system.
  4. Save

Deleting an entry

  1. Delete name

  2. Say the name after being prompted to do so.
  3. Confirm the query with »Yes«.

Deleting all entries

  1. »Delete phonebook«
    The dialog for deleting the phone book is opened.
  2. Confirm the query with >Yes<.
  3. Confirm the query again with >Yes<.

Reading and selecting entries

  1. »Read phonebook«
    The dialog for reading the phone book is opened.
  2. Say >Dial number when the desired entry is read.

Selecting an entry

  1. »Dial name«
  2. Say the name after being prompted to do so.
  3. Confirm the query with >Yes.

Adjusting the volume

Turn the knob during an announcement.

The volume remains constant even if the volume of other audio sources is changed.
The volume is stored for the remote control currently in use.

Notes

Do not use the voice operation to initiate an Emergency Request. In stressful situations, the voice and vocal pitch can change. This can unnecessarily delay the establishment of a telephone connection.

Instead, use the SOS button, refer to page 267, in the vicinity of the interior mirror.

Environmental conditions

▷ Say the commands, numbers, and letters smoothly and with normal volume, emphasis, and speed.
▶ Always say commands in the language of the system. The language for the mobile phone voice operation is preset and cannot be changed in the Control Display.
Keep the doors, windows, and glass sun-roof closed to prevent noise interference.
▶ Avoid making other noise in the vehicle while speaking.

Snap-in adapter

General information

Detailed information about snap-in adapter, which supports the functions of the mobile phone, available from the service center.

Notes

At high temperatures, the charge function of the mobile phone can be limited where appropriate and the functions are no longer executed.

When the mobile phone is used via the vehicle, heed the operating manual of the mobile phone.

Installation position

In the center armrest.

Inserting the snap-in adapter

  1. Press the button and remove the cover.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Inserting the snap-in adapter - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with a belt switch and control panel (no visible text or symbols)
  1. Insert the snap-in adapter at the front, arrow 1, and press down, arrow 2, until it engages.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Inserting the snap-in adapter - 2

natural_image Interior view of a car gear shift lever with directional arrows indicating motion (no text or symbols)

Inserting the mobile phone

  1. Depending on the mobile phone, remove the protective cap from the antenna connector and from the USB connection of the mobile phone.

  2. Slide the mobile phone with the buttons facing up in the direction of the electrical connections, arrow 1, and push downward, arrow 2 until it engages.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Inserting the mobile phone - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car gear shift lever with numbered arrows indicating specific components (no text or symbols present)

Removing the mobile phone

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Removing the mobile phone - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car airfoil with a black button on the backrest, showing no text or symbols.

Press the button and remove the mobile phone.

Office

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

At a glance

General information

Contacts, appointments, tasks, notes, text messages, and e-mails from the mobile phone can be displayed on the Control Display if the mobile phone provides compatible support of these functions and the necessary Bluetooth standards.

Information about which mobile phones support Office functions can be found at www.bmwusa.com/bluetooth. A limited number of compatible mobile phones is available for Office.

Contents are only displayed in full length when the vehicle is stationary.

The mobile phone has read-access only.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Do not use Office while driving

To avoid becoming distracted and posing an unnecessary hazard to your vehicle's occupants and to other road users, never attempt to use the controls or enter information unless traffic and road conditions allow this.

Requirements

A suitable mobile phone is paired with the vehicle and connected. In some mobile phones, data access must be confirmed on the mobile phone.

The time, time zone, and date, refer to page 78, are correctly set on the Control Display and on the mobile phone to correctly display appointments, for example.

▶ Office is activated, refer to page 211.

Updating

Data are updated every time the mobile phone is connected to the vehicle. Appointment entries, tasks, notes and reminders can be updated separately.

  1. "Office"
  2. "Current office", "Calendar", "Tasks", "Notes" or "Reminders"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Update data"

Cell phone data are transmitted again to the vehicle.

Office information

The number of unread messages and active tasks as well as the upcoming appointments are displayed.

  1. "Office"
  2. "Current office"
  3. Select the desired entry to display details.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Office information - 1

text_image Current office Unread messages: 2 1 Active tasks: 3 09:00 Team Meeting 10:30 Office

Contacts

Note

If equipped with full mobile phone preparation package.

At a glance

Contacts can be created and edited. The contacts from the mobile phone are displayed as well if this function is supported by the mobile phone. Addresses can be adopted as destinations for navigation and the phone numbers can be dialed.

Displaying contacts

General information

  1. "Office"
  2. "Contacts"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

text_image Office ✓ Current office Contacts Messages Calendar Tasks Notes Reminders

All contacts are listed in alphabetical order. Depending on the number of contacts, an A-Z search is offered, refer to page 21.

A symbol indicates the storage location of the contacts:

Symbol Storage location

No symbol In the vehicle; the address has not been checked as a destination.

Ⓐ In the vehicle; the address has been checked as a destination.

Mobile phone.

Dialing phone numbers

  1. Select the desired contact.
  2. Select the phone number.
    The connection is established.

Editing a contact

  1. Select the desired contact.
  2. "Edit contact"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Editing a contact - 1

text_image Contact Edit contact Bauer Melanie +49897654321 +49891234567 017088776655 +4917088776655
  1. Change the entries.
  2. "Store contact in vehicle"

When a contact is edited, the changes are not stored on the mobile phone. A copy of the entry is stored in the vehicle.

Selecting the contact as a navigation destination

  1. Select the desired contact.
  2. Select the address.

When contacts from the mobile phone are used, the address may need to be matched to the navigation data contained in the vehicle. In this case:

Correct the address.

  1. "Start guidance" or "Add as another destination"

Checking the address as a destination

An address that is to be used for destination guidance must match the navigation data con-

tained in the vehicle. The address can be checked for this purpose.

  1. Select the desired contact and highlight the address.
  2. Open "Options".
  3. "Check as destination"
  4. Correct and store the address if necessary.
    If the address is corrected and stored, a copy of it is stored in the vehicle. The address is not changed on the mobile phone.

New contact

General information

A contact can have up to 8 phone numbers, 2 addresses, 3 e-mail addresses and one Internet address.

  1. "Office"
  2. "Contacts"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "New contact"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

text_image Options Split screen Switch off control display Contacts New contact Delete all contacts Display: first, last name Office
  1. The entry fields are still filled with the previous entries: "Delete input fields"
  2. Fill in the entry fields: select the symbol next to the entry field.
  3. Enter the text and assign the contact type.
  4. In the navigation system: enter address. Only addresses contained in the navigation data in the vehicle can be entered. This ensures that destination guidance is possible for all addresses.

If necessary, "Accept address".

  1. "Store contact in vehicle"

Contact types

Various contact types can be assigned to phone numbers and addresses.

Symbol Meaning

Home phone number.

Business phone number.

Mobile phone number.

Other phone number.

Home address.

Business address.

Specifying the home address

A home address can be stored. It appears at the top of the contact list.

  1. "Home"
  2. Create a contact.
  3. "Store contact in vehicle"

Selecting the sorting order of the names

Names can be displayed in a different order.

  1. "Office"
  2. "Contacts"
  3. Open "Options".
  4. "Display: last, first name" or "Display: first, last name"

Depending on how the contacts were stored on the mobile phone, the sorting order of the names may differ from the selected sorting order.

Show contact pictures

Pictures stored with the contacts are stored in the vehicle when the mobile phone is connected to the vehicle. The number of transmitted pic-

tures depends on the mobile phone. The mobile phone must support this function.

  1. "Office"
  2. "Contacts"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Configure Bluetooth®"
  5. "Show images"

Display of all contact pictures is activated or deactivated.

Exporting/importing contacts

Contacts can be exported and imported via the Personal Profile, refer to page 31. The contacts stored in the vehicle are exported, but not those from the mobile phone.

Deleting contacts

Only contacts that are stored in the vehicle are deleted. The contacts on the mobile phone cannot be deleted.

  1. "Office"
  2. "Contacts"
  3. Highlight the contact.
  4. Open "Options".
  5. "Delete contact" or "Delete all contacts".
  6. If necessary. "Yes"

Messages

General information

Whether or not text messages and e-mails from the mobile phone are displayed depends on whether transmission from the mobile phone to the vehicle is supported. Text messages and e-mails may not be supported by the service provider, or the function may need to be enabled separately. After the mobile phone is first paired, transmission may take several minutes. Messages are only displayed in full length when the vehicle is stationary. Messages from the additional telephone are not transmitted.

Displaying messages

  1. "Office"
  2. "Messages"
    A symbol identifies the type of message.

Symbol Message type

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Message type - 1

Text messages.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Message type - 2

My Info

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Message type - 3

Message from the Concierge service.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Message type - 4

Message from BMW Info.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Message type - 5

E-mail from mobile phone.

Filtering the message list

The message list can be filtered, when more than one type of message exists.

  1. "Filter:"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Filtering the message list - 1

text_image Messages Filter: ? (Service message) MyInfo Hemden- und Textilreinigung Concierge Tankstelle Tank&Shop Concierge Hotel Munich
  1. Select the type of message.

▷ "All"
All messages are displayed.
▶ "E-mail"
Only e-mails from the mobile phone are displayed.
▶ "Service message"
Only messages from the BMW Assist Concierge service, My Info and BMW Info are displayed.
▶ "Text message"
Only text messages from the mobile phone are displayed.

Deleting messages

Messages from the Concierge service, My Info, and BMW Info can be deleted.

Delete a message:

  1. "Office"
  2. "Messages"
  3. Select the desired message.
  4. "Options" Open.
  5. "Delete message"

Delete all messages:

  1. "Office"
  2. "Messages"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Delete all messages" or "Delete service messages"

Text messages

Calling the sender of a text message

  1. Select the desired message.
  2. Select the symbol.

Saving the sender in the contacts

  1. Highlight the desired message.
  2. Open "Options".
  3. "Store as new contact" or "Add to existing contact"

Using contact data

Contact data from appointments, tasks, text messages, e-mails and notes can be saved or selected, refer to page 229.

Reading the text message out loud

Read the text messages out loud, refer to page 230.

My Info

Starting destination guidance

  1. Select the message.
  2. "Start guidance" or "Add as another destination"

Dialing the number in the message

Up to 4 phone numbers can be transmitted with a message.

  1. Select the desired message.

  2. "Call":

If the message contains a number, the connection is established.

☐ "Select phone number":

If the message contains more than one number, select the desired number from the list. The connection is established.

Message from the Concierge service

Starting destination guidance

  1. Select the desired message.
  2. "Start guidance" or "Add as another destination"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting destination guidance - 1

text_image Concierge 442km Start guidance Deutschland 80788 München Petuelring 130 08912345678
  1. Start destination guidance, if necessary.

Dialing the number in the message

Up to 4 phone numbers can be transmitted with a message.

  1. Select the desired message.
  2. "Call":

If the message contains a number, the connection is established.

"Select phone number":

If the message contains more than one number, select the desired number from the list. The connection is established.

Storing an address

  1. Select the desired message.
  2. Open "Options".
  3. "Store contact in vehicle"

Displaying additional information

  1. Select the desired message.
  2. "Further information"

BMW Info

General information

Messages from BMW regarding service actions and news from BMW.

Displaying the message

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displaying the message - 1

text_image Messages Filter:? (Service message ) BMW Info Winterreifen Concierge Tankstelle Tank&Shop Concierge Hotel Munich

Select the desired message.

The following functions are available:

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

"Further information"

Detailed information about a message is displayed. This does not result in any costs.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 2

"Start guidance" or "Add as another destination"

Symbol Function

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 1

"Call"

If the message contains a number, the connection is established.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Function - 2

"Select phone number"

If the message contains more than one number, select the desired number from the list. The connection is established.

E-mail

Displaying e-mails

  1. "Office"
  2. "Messages"
  3. Select the desired e-mail.

Displaying e-mail contacts

If the sender and recipient of an e-mail are transmitted by the mobile phone, this information is displayed in the e-mail.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displaying e-mail contacts - 1

"Sender/Recipient"

If the e-mail addresses are stored in the contacts, the contact is displayed. Select the contact to display details.

If the e-mail addresses are not stored in the contacts, only the e-mail address is displayed.

Using contact data

Contact data from appointments, tasks, text messages, e-mails and notes can be saved or selected, refer to page 229.

Deactivating the full display

When an e-mail is opened in the vehicle, the e-mail is fully transmitted to the vehicle. This may result in charges.

  1. "Office"
  2. "Messages"

  3. "Options" Open.

  4. "Fully download e-mails"

Only a part of the email from the cell phone is loaded into the vehicle.

Reading the e-mail out loud

Read the e-mail out loud, refer to page 230.

Calendar

Display the calendar

Appointments during the last 20 and the next 50 days can be displayed.

  1. "Office"
  2. "Calendar"

The appointments on the current day are displayed.

Selecting the calendar day

  1. Select the date.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Selecting the calendar day - 1

text_image Calendar Thursday , 03.07. 09:00 Team Meeting 10:30 Office
  1. Select the desired day or date.

▷ "Next day"
▶ "Date:"
▶ "Previous day"
▶ "Today"

Display the appointment

  1. Select the desired appointment.
  2. Scroll through the appointment if necessary:
    ▶ Turn the controller.

▶ Select the symbol.

Using contact data

Contact data from appointments, tasks, text messages, e-mails and notes can be saved or selected, refer to page 229.

Reading the appointment out loud

Read the appointment out loud, refer to page 230.

Tasks

Displaying the task list

Display tasks that are due within the next 90 days.

  1. "Office"
  2. "Tasks"

Sorting the task list

  1. Select the header in the task list.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Sorting the task list - 1

text_image Tasks Subject Due Auto test... 13.09. Task 1 26.06. Task 3 03.06.
  1. Select the sorting criterion:

▷ "Priority (!)"*
▷ "Subject"
▶ "Due date"

Displaying the task

  1. Select the desired task.
  2. Scroll in the task if necessary:

▶ Turn the controller.
Select the symbol.

Using contact data

Contact data from appointments, tasks, text messages, e-mails and notes can be saved or selected, refer to page 229.

Reading the task out loud

Read the task out loud, refer to page 230.

Notes

Displaying notes

  1. "Office"
  2. "Notes"

All notes are displayed.

Displaying the note

  1. Select the desired note.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displaying the note - 1

text_image Notes Name Team Meeting organisieren Fahrzeug buchen
  1. Scroll in the note if necessary:

▶ Turn the controller.
Select the symbol.

Using contact data

Contact data from appointments, tasks, text messages, e-mails and notes can be saved or selected, refer to page 229.

Reading the note out loud

Read the note out loud, refer to page 230.

Reminders

Displaying reminders

Reminders of pending appointments and tasks are displayed. After an appointment or after a task is due, the reminder is no longer displayed.

  1. "Office"
  2. "Reminders"
  3. Select the desired reminder.

The corresponding appointment or the task are displayed.

Using contact data

At a glance

Contact data from appointments, tasks, text messages, emails and notes can be stored or selected.

Displaying contact or selecting phone number

  1. "Use contact data"
  2. Display the contact or select the phone number:

▶ Select the contact to display contact details.
▶ Select the phone number to establish a connection directly.

Storing contact data

  1. "Use contact data"
  2. Highlight the phone number or e-mail address.
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Add to existing contact" or "Store as new contact"

Reading out loud

Text messages, e-mails, appointment entries, tasks, and notes can be read out loud.

  1. Select the desired message, appointment, task, or note.
  2. Select the symbol.

The following options are available during reading:

▶ "Pause"
Interrupt reading. Select again to restart reading.
▶ "Back to beginning"
Start reading message again from the beginning.
▶ \$Select the symbol.
Skip a paragraph.
▶ Select the symbol.
Go back one paragraph.
To end reading, tilt the controller to the left.

What to do if...

Information on suitable mobile phones, refer to page 210.

Appointments, tasks, notes, text messages, or e-mails from the mobile phone are not displayed.

The mobile phone is not capable of the missing function or is not connected correctly.
The Office function is deactivated.
The mobile phone is connected as an additional phone.
▶ Appointments are older than 20 days or are more than 50 days in the future.
The tasks have been marked as completed or have a due date that lies more than 90 days in the future.

▶ Depending on the number of stored appointments, task notes, and messages in the mobile phone, not all are displayed in the vehicle.

Not all appointments and tasks from the mobile phone are displayed at the right time?

The time zone, time or date is incorrectly set on the Control Display and mobile phone.

The e-mail attachment is not displayed.

▶ E-mails are transmitted without an attachment.

Entries are not displayed in full length.

▶ Text were already transmitted from the mobile phone in a shortened form.
▶ Synchronization between the mobile phone and vehicle may take several minutes.
The contact pictures are not being displayed?
▶ Up to 200 contact pictures can be stored in the vehicle.
The E-mail is displayed with a delay?
▶ Check the e-mail settings on the mobile phone and adjust if necessary.

If all points in this list have been checked and the required function is still not available, contact the hotline or service center.

Contacts

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Note

If not equipped with mobile phone complete preparation package.

General information

Contacts can be created and edited and the addresses can be adopted as destinations for navigation.

New contact

  1. "Contacts"
  2. "New contact"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - New contact - 1

text_image Contacts ✓ New contact My contacts
  1. The entry fields are still filled with the previous entries: "Delete input fields"

  2. Fill in the entry fields: select the symbol next to the entry field.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - New contact - 2

text_image New contact Delete input fields Store contact in vehicle Last name First name Home Business Mobile
  1. Enter the text, refer to page 21.
  2. If the vehicle is equipped with a navigation system: Enter the address. Only addresses contained in the navigation data in the vehicle can be entered. This ensures that destination guidance is possible for all addresses.
  3. If necessary, "Store".
  4. "Store contact in vehicle"

Specifying the home address

A home address can be stored. It appears at the top of the contact list.

  1. "Home"
  2. Create a contact.
  3. "Store contact in vehicle"

My contacts

General information

List of all contacts stored in the vehicle.

Displaying contacts

  1. "Contacts"

2. "My contacts"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - "My contacts" - 1

text_image Contacts New contact ✓ My contacts

All contacts are listed in alphabetical order. Depending on the number of contacts, an A-Z search is offered, refer to page 21.

A symbol indicates the storage location of the contacts:

Symbol Storage location

No symbol In the vehicle; the address has not been checked as a destination.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Symbol Storage location - 1

In the vehicle; the address has been checked as a destination.

Editing a contact

  1. Select the desired contact.
  2. "Edit contact"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Editing a contact - 1

text_image Contact Edit contact MUSTERMANN MÜNCHEN, MÜNCHEN (STA PETUELRING 130 DEUTSCHLAND
  1. Change the entries.
  2. Move the controller to the left.
  3. "Yes"

Selecting the contact as a navigation destination

  1. Select the desired contact.

  2. Select the address.

  3. "Start guidance" or "Add as another destination"

Checking the address as a destination

An address that is to be used for destination guidance must match the navigation data contained in the vehicle. The address can be checked for this purpose.

  1. Select the desired contact and highlight the address.
  2. "Options" Open.
  3. "Check as destination"
  4. Correct and store the address if necessary.

Selecting the sorting order of the names

Names can be displayed in a different order.

  1. "My contacts"
  2. "Options" Open.
  3. "Display: last, first name" or "Display: first, last name"

Exporting/importing contacts

Contacts can be exported and imported via the Personal Profile, refer to page 31.

Deleting contacts

  1. "My contacts"
  2. Highlight the contact.
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Delete contact" or "Delete all contacts"

ConnectedDrive

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

BMW Assist

General information

BMW Assist provides you with certain services, e.g., transmission of the position data of your vehicle to the BMW Assist Response Center if an Emergency Request has been initiated.

Many BMW Assist services depend on the individually agreed upon contract.

After your contract has expired, the BMW Assist system will be deactivated by the BMW Assist Response Center without your having to visit a service center. After the BMW Assist system has been deactivated, no BMW Assist services will be available. The BMW Assist system can be reactivated by a service center after you sign a new contract.

Requirements

The installed BMW Assist system is logged in to a wireless communications network. This network must be capable of transmitting the services.
To transmit position data, the vehicle must be able to determine the current position.
The BMW Assist service contract was signed with your service center or with the BMW Assist Response Center. Enabling must have been completed.
▶ BMW Assist is activated.

Services offered

Emergency Request: when you press the SOS button, a connection to the BMW Assist Response Center is established. The BMW Assist Response Center then speaks with you and takes further steps to help you.
▶ Automatic Collision Notification: under certain conditions, a connection is established to the BMW Assist Response Center after a serious accident. If possible, the BMW Assist Response Center then speaks with you and takes further steps to help you.
▶ Enhanced Roadside Assistance: BMW Roadside Assistance can be contacted if assistance is needed in the event of a breakdown. If possible, the vehicle and position data are transmitted in the process.
▶ Customer Relations: connection with Customer Relations for information on all aspects of your vehicle.
▶ TeleService: data on your vehicle's service status or required inspections are transmitted to your service center, either automatically before a service due date or when you request a BMW service appointment.
▶ Remote Door Unlock: the BMW Assist Response Center provides assistance if, for example, the remote control is not available and the vehicle needs to be opened.
Stolen Vehicle Recovery: after you report that your vehicle was stolen to the police, the BMW Assist Response Center can determine its position.
In addition to these services, the optional Convenience Plan offers Concierge service and information for route planning, traffic, and weather. A limited number of calls can be made via the BMW Assist Response Center with Critical Calling if, for example, the mobile phone is not available or discharged.

Press the SOS button to contact the BMW Assist Response Center.

TeleService

General information

TeleService supports communication with your service center.

Data on the vehicle's service requirements can be sent directly to the service center. In this way, the service center can plan its work in advance. This shortens the duration of the service appointment.
In the event of a breakdown, data on the vehicle's condition can be sent directly to Roadside Assistance.
The service varies by country.
▶ Connection costs may ensue.
▶ Services may be restricted abroad.

Requirements

▶ BMW Assist is activated.
▶ Wireless reception is available.
The ignition is switched on.

Use of TeleService

The TeleServices are typically activated in the vehicle.

Even TeleService Customer Service is not active, a voice contact to Roadside Assistance is still possible.

To continue using or to deactivate the services, please contact your service partner or the BMW customer hotline.

Concierge service

General information

The BMW Assist Concierge service offers information on events, gas stations or hotels, and provides phone numbers and addresses. Hotels can be booked directly by the BMW Assist Concierge service. The Concierge service is part of the optional BMW Convenience Plan.

Starting the Concierge service

  1. "BMW Assist" or "ConnectedDrive"
  2. "Concierge"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting the Concierge service - 1

text_image ConnectedDrive BMW Assist ✓ Concierge Messages Roadside Assistance BMW Online Customer Relations Service Request
  1. "Start service"

A voice connection is established with the BMW Assist Concierge service. Phone numbers and addresses can be transmitted to the vehicle.

Roadside Assistance

At a glance

BMW Roadside Assistance can be contacted if assistance is needed in the event of a break-down.

Roadside Assistance can also be contacted via a Check Control message, refer to page 72.

Start Roadside Assistance without BMW Assist or TeleServices

  1. "BMW Assist" or "ConnectedDrive"
  2. "Roadside Assistance"

The Roadside Assistance number is displayed. If the mobile phone is paired, a con-

nection is established to Roadside Assistance.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Start Roadside Assistance without BMW Assist or TeleServices - 1

text_image ConnectedDrive BMW Assist Concierge Messages ✓ Roadside Assistance BMW Online Customer Relations Service Request

Start Roadside Assistance with BMW Assist or TeleServices

General information

If the vehicle is equipped with TeleServices, support is first offered through TeleService Diagnosis and, where applicable, then through TeleService Help.

  1. "BMW Assist" or "ConnectedDrive"
  2. "Roadside Assistance"
  3. "Start service"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

text_image Roadside Assistance Start service Service ready

TeleService Diagnosis

TeleService Diagnosis enables the wireless transmission of detailed vehicle data that are important for vehicle diagnosis. These data are transmitted automatically.

After the data are transmitted, the voice connection to Roadside Assistance is re-established.

At a glance

A business search can be opened via BMW Search.

License conditions

This product contains NetFront Browser software of ACCESS Co., Ltd. Copyright © 2007 ACCESS Co., Ltd. All rights reserved.

NetFront is a trademark or registered trademark of ACCESS CO., LTD., in Japan and other countries.

This software is based in part on the work of the Independent JPEG Group.

Requirements

▶ Subscription to the optional Convenience Plan.
The date setting, refer to page 78, on the Control Display is current.
The vehicle is located within wireless network coverage.

  1. "BMW Assist" or "ConnectedDrive"
  2. "BMW Online"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting BMW Search - 1

text_image ConnectedDrive BMW Assist Concierge Messages Roadside Assistance ✓ BMW Online Customer Relations Service Request
  1. If necessary, "OK".

The BMW Search home page is displayed.

To start a search:

▶ Turn the controller to highlight an element.
▶ Press the controller to display an element.

Opening the start page

  1. "Options" Open.
  2. "Display start page"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the start page - 1

text_image Options Split screen Switch off control display Current page Display start page Reload Cancel loading BMW Online

Loading a new page

  1. "Options" Open.
  2. "Update"

Cancel

  1. "Options" Open.
  2. "Cancel loading"

Customer Relations

At a glance

Contact Customer Relations for information on all aspects of your vehicle.

Calling Customer Relations

Vehicles not equipped with BMW Assist or TeleService

  1. "BMW Assist" or "ConnectedDrive"
  2. "Customer Relations"

The Customer Relations phone number is displayed. If the mobile phone is paired, a connection is established to Customer Relations.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicles not equipped with BMW Assist or TeleService - 1

text_image Customer Relations Please call this number: 08912345678

Vehicles equipped with BMW Assist or TeleService

  1. "BMW Assist" or "ConnectedDrive"
  2. "Customer Relations"
  3. "Start service"

Service Request

At a glance

Sends information to your service partner to request the arrangement of a service appointment. The TeleService data is transmitted during a Service Request. If possible, your service partner will establish contact with you.

Starting a Service Request

  1. "BMW Assist" or "ConnectedDrive"
  2. "Service Request"
  3. "Start service"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting a Service Request - 1

text_image Service Request Start service Service ready

A Service Request can be started via a Check Control message, refer to page 72.

Automatic Service Request

The TeleService data necessary for servicing the vehicle are automatically sent to your service partner prior to the service deadline. If possible, the service partner will contact you and a service appointment can be arranged.

To check when your service partner was notified:

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic Service Request - 1

text_image Vehicle Info Quick reference Search by pictures Owner's Manual Onboard info Trip computer ✓ Vehicle status
  1. Open "Options".
  2. "Last Service Request"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Automatic Service Request - 2

text_image Options Split screen Switch off control display Flat Tire Monitor Display Owner's Manual Reset Vehicle Info Last Service Request

TeleService Report

Transmits technical data that is evaluated for the ongoing development of BMW products from your vehicle to BMW in regular intervals if necessary.

TeleService Report is activated in vehicles that meet certain technical requirements and have a valid Assist contract; this feature is free of charge.

Neither personal data nor position data is transmitted.

Indicate when the last Teleservice Report was transmitted:

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"
  3. "Options" Open.
  4. "Last Teleservice Info"

Services status

Displaying available services

Display of all services available in the vehicle.

  1. "BMW Assist" or "ConnectedDrive"
  2. "Service Status"
  3. "Available services"

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displaying available services - 1

text_image Service Status Update BMW Assist Available services

Updating BMW Assist

Manual update of TeleService and BMW Assist. "Update BMW Assist"

Data transfer

During the updating of BMW services, display the status of the data transfer.

  1. "BMW Assist" or "ConnectedDrive"
  2. "Options" Open.
  3. "Data transfer"

Apps

At a glance

Certain software applications of a suitable cell phone can be integrated in the vehicle. These software applications are displayed on the Control Display.

Operation can be performed via iDrive.

Requirements

The mobile phone is suitable.
The cell phone operating system supports the software applications of Apps.
▶ Software applications are installed on the cell phone and ready to use.
Corresponding mobile wireless contract. Any additionally incurred costs are not a part of Apps.
▶ Use only BMW approved software applications; otherwise, it may result in malfunctions.

Information about suitable cell phones, available software applications and their installation can be found at www.bmw.com/connectivity or at the service center.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Requirements - 1

Create the entries.

Make entries only when traffic and road conditions allow. Otherwise, the vehicle occupants and other road users may be put in danger because of the distraction from driving.

For reasons of safety, some software applications are usable only while the vehicle is stationary.

Use apps

  1. Connect the cell phone via the snap-in adapter or via the USB audio interface.
  2. "ConnectedDrive"
  3. Select the desired software application.

Displaying status

Information about the currently available software applications can be displayed.

  1. "ConnectedDrive"
  2. "BMW apps"

Plugin

Selected functions of the cell phone are displayed on the Control Display. Operation can be performed via iDrive.

  1. Connect cell phone via the snap-in adapter.
  2. "ConnectedDrive"
  3. "Plugin"
  4. "Activate PlugIn"
  5. Navigate to the displayed functions via the controller and select, for example, a desired category or track.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Plugin - 1

Press button to switch within the cell phone functions to a higher level or back.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Plugin - 2

Press button twice to switch back to the main menu.

Notes

The ranges of Apps that can be displayed on the Control Display depend on the range of installed software applications on the cell phone.
The data transmission of the software applications from the cell phone to the vehicle can last some time. Some software applications depend on the speed of the available Internet connection of the cell phone.
▶ Some cell phones cannot simultaneously use Apps and the Bluetooth hands-free system.
If necessary, restart the software application on the cell phone after a phone conversation.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 1

natural_image Close-up of a metallic funnel pouring liquid into a dark cylindrical container (no text or symbols visible)

Mobility

To ensure that you remain mobile at all times, this chapter supplies you with important information on the topics of fuels and lubricants, wheels and tires, service, maintenance, and Roadside Assistance.

Refueling

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Refuel promptly

Refuel below a range of 30 miles/50 km; otherwise, engine functions are not ensured and damage may occur.

Fuel cap

Opening

  1. Briefly press the rear edge of the fuel filler flap.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening - 1

natural_image Black square button with white arrow symbol pointing left (no text or numbers)
  1. Turn the fuel cap counterclockwise.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening - 2

natural_image Diagram of a mechanical component with an arrow indicating direction, no visible text or symbols
  1. Place the fuel cap in the bracket attached to the fuel filler flap.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening - 3

natural_image Interior view of a device showing a black-and-white photo of a device with a white arrow pointing to it, no visible text or symbols.

Closing

  1. Fit the cap and turn it clockwise until you clearly hear a click.

  2. Close the fuel filler flap.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Closing - 1

Do not pinch the retaining strap

Do not pinch the retaining strap attached to the cap; otherwise, the cap cannot be closed properly and fuel vapors can escape.

A message is displayed if the cap is loose or missing.

Manually unlocking fuel filler flap

In the event of an electrical malfunction, for example.

  1. Open the cover on the right side trim.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Manually unlocking fuel filler flap - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the rearrest tray and side panel, with a black rectangular component inserted into the backrest area (no text or symbols visible)
  1. Pull the green knob with the fuel pump symbol. This releases the fuel filler flap.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Manually unlocking fuel filler flap - 2

natural_image Interior view of a car trunk with visible structural components and a highlighted interior area (no text or symbols)

Observe the following when refueling

The fuel tank is full when the filler nozzle clicks off the first time.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Observe the following when refueling - 1

Handling fuels

Obey safety regulations posted at the gas

station.

Fuel

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Fuel quality

Fuels that are marked on the gas pump as containing metal must not be used.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Fuel quality - 1

Refuel only with unleaded gasoline without metallic additives.

Do not refuel with any leaded gasoline or gasoline with metallic additives, e. g. manganese or iron, or permanent damage to the catalytic converter and other components.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Fuel quality - 2

Do not refuel with ethanol

Do not refuel with E85, i.e., fuel with an ethanol content of 85 %, or with Flex Fuel, as this would damage the engine and fuel supply system.

Required fuel

Super Premium Gasoline/AKI 91 or AKI 89

BMW recommends AKI 91 or 89.

Gasoline with lower AKI

The minimum AKI Rating is 89.

If you use gasoline with this minimum AKI Rating, the engine may produce knocking sounds when starting at high outside temperatures.

This has no effect on the engine life.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Gasoline with lower AKI - 1

Minimum fuel grade

Do not use any gasoline below the minimum specified fuel grade; otherwise, engine damage may occur.

Use high-quality brands

Field experience has indicated significant differences in fuel quality: volatility, composition, additives, etc., among gasolines offered for sale in the United States and Canada.

Fuels containing up to and including 10 % ethanol or other oxygenates with up to 2.8 % oxygen by weight, that is, 15 % MTBE or 3 % methanol plus an equivalent amount of co-solvent, will not void the applicable warranties with respect to defects in materials or workmanship.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Use high-quality brands - 1

Minimum fuel grade

The use of poor-quality fuels may result in driveability, starting and stalling problems especially under certain environmental conditions such as high ambient temperature and high altitude.

Should you encounter driveability problems which you suspect could be related to the fuel you are using, we recommend that you respond by switching to a recognized high-quality brand such as gasoline that is advertised as Top Tier Detergent Gasoline.

Failure to comply with these recommendations may result in unscheduled maintenance.

BMW recommends BP fuels

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Use high-quality brands - 2

Wheels and tires

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Tire inflation pressure

Safety information

The tire characteristics and tire inflation pressure influence the following:

The service life of the tires.
Road safety.
▶ Driving comfort.

Checking the pressure

Only check the tire inflation pressure when the tires are cold. This means after driving no more than 1.25 miles/2 km or when the vehicle has been parked for at least 2 hours. When the tires are warm, the tire inflation pressure is higher.

Check the tire inflation pressure regularly Regularly check the tire inflation pressure and correct it as needed: at least twice a month and before a long trip. If you fail to observe this precaution, you may be driving on tires with incorrect tire pressures, a condition that may not only compromise your vehicle's driving stability, but also lead to tire damage and the risk of an accident.

After correcting the tire inflation pressure:

▶ Reinitialize the Flat Tire Monitor.
▶ Reinitialize the Tire Pressure Monitor.

Pressure specifications

The tire inflation pressure table, refer to page 246, contains all pressure specifications for the specified tire sizes at the ambient temperature. Pressure specifications apply to approved tire sizes and recommended tire brands. This information can be obtained from your service center.

To identify the correct tire inflation pressure, please note the following:

▶ Tire sizes of your vehicle.
▶ Maximum allowable driving speed.

Tire inflation pressures up to 100 mph/160 km/h

For speeds of up to 100 mph/160 km/h and for optimum driving comfort, note the pressure values in the tire inflation pressure table, refer to page 246, and adjust as necessary.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tire inflation pressures up to 100 mph/160 km/h - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the side panel and seatbelt (no text or symbols visible)

These pressure values can also be found on the tire inflation pressure label on the driver's door pillar.

Maximum permissible speed Do not exceed 100 mph/160 km/h; otherwise, tire damage and accidents may result.

Tire inflation pressure values up to 100 mph/160 km/h

640i

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI
Specifications in bar/PSI with cold tires

245/45 R 18 100 V 2.2 / 32 2.4 / 35
M+S XL A/S RSC
245/40 R 19 98 V M

+S XL A/S RSC
245/45 R 18 100 V
M+S XL RSC

V: 245/45 R 18 96 Y 2.2 / 32-
RSC- 2.2 / 32

H: 275/40 R 18 99 Y

RSC

V: 245/40 R 19 94 Y 2.2 / 32-
RSC-2.4 / 35

H: 275/35 R 19 96 Y

RSC

V: 245/35 R 20 95 Y 2.6 / 38-
XL RSC-2.6 / 38

H: 275/30 R 20 97 Y

XL RSC

Compact wheel:Speed up to a max. of
T 135/80 R 18 10450 mph / 80 km/h
M4.2 / 60

650i

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI
Specifications in psi/ kilopascal with cold tires

245/45 R 18 100 V M 2.2 / 32 2.4 / 35
+S XL A/S RSC
245/40 R 19 98 V M

+S XL A/S RSC
245/45 R 18 100 V M
+S XL RSC

V: 245/45 R 18 96 Y2.2 / 32-
RSC-2.2 / 32
H: 275/40 R 18 99 Y
RSC
V: 245/40 R 19 94 Y2.2 / 32-
RSC-2.4 / 35

H: 275/35 R 19 96 Y RSC

V: 245/35 R 20 95 Y2.6 / 38-
XL RSC-2.6 / 38
H: 275/30 R 20 97 Y
XL RSC

650i xDrive

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI
Specifications in psi/ kilopascal with cold tires

245/45 R 18 100 V M 2.2 / 32 2.4 / 35
+S XL A/S RSC
245/45 R 18 100 V M
+S XL RSC

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI
245/40 R 19 98 V M +S XL A/S RSC2.4 / 352.4 / 35
V: 245/45 R 18 96 Y RSC2.2 / 32-
-2.4 / 35
H: 275/40 R 18 99 Y RSC
V: 245/40 R 19 94 Y RSC2.2 / 32-
-2.4 / 35
H: 275/35 R 19 96 Y RSC
V: 245/35 R 20 95 Y XL RSC2.6 / 38-
-2.6 / 38
H: 275/30 R 20 97 Y XL RSC

Tire inflation pressures at max. speeds above 100 mph/160 km/h

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tire inflation pressures at max. speeds above 100 mph/160 km/h - 1

Speeds above 100 mph/160 km/h

In order to drive at maximum speeds in excess of 100 mph/160 km/h, please observe, and, if necessary, adjust tire pressures for speeds exceeding 100 mph/160 km/h from the relevant table on the following pages. Otherwise tire damage and accidents could occur.

Tire inflation pressure values over 100 mph/160 km/h

640i

Without high-speed tuning feature

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI

Specifications in bar/PSI with cold tires
245/45 R 18 100 V M+S XL A/S RSC2.2 / 322.6 / 38
245/45 R 18 100 V M+S XL RSC
245/40 R 19 98 V M +S XL A/S RSC2.4 / 352.8 / 41
V: 245/45 R 18 96 Y RSC2.2 / 32-
-2.2 / 32
H: 275/40 R 18 99 Y RSC
V: 245/40 R 19 94 Y RSC2.2 / 32-
-2.4 / 35
H: 275/35 R 19 96 Y RSC
V: 245/35 R 20 95 Y XL RSC2.6 / 38-
-2.6 / 38
H: 275/30 R 20 97 Y XL RSC
Compact wheel: T 135/80 R 18 104 MSpeed up to a max. of 50 mph / 80 km/h
4.2 / 60

With high-speed tuning feature

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI

Specifications in bar/PSI with cold tires

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tire inflation pressure values over 100 mph/160 km/h - 1

text_image Diagram showing human silhouette icons and a car with directional arrows, likely illustrating vehicle or transportation concept.

245/45 R 18 100 V 2.6 / 38 2.9 / 42 M+S XL RSC

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI
V: 245/45 R 18 962.3 / 33-
Y RSC-2.4 / 35
H: 275/40 R 18 99
Y RSC
V: 245/40 R 19 942.4 / 35-
Y RSC-2.6 / 38
H: 275/35 R 19 96
Y RSC
V: 245/35 R 20 952.7 / 39-
Y XL RSC-2.9 /42
H: 275/30 R 20 97
Y XL RSC
Compact wheel:Speed up to a max. of
T 135/80 R 18 10450 mph / 80 km/h
M4.2 / 60

650i

Without high-speed tuning feature

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI
Specifications in bar/ PSI with cold tiresBMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tire inflation pressure values over 100 mph/160 km/h - 2
245/45 R 18 100 V M +S XL A/S RSC2.2 / 32 2.6 / 38
245/45 R 18 100 V M +S XL RSC
245/40 R 19 98 V M +S XL A/S RSC2.4 / 35 2.8 / 41
V: 245/45 R 18 96 Y RSC2.2 / 32 -
H: 275/40 R 18 99 Y RSC- 2.2 / 32
Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI
V: 245/40 R 19 94 Y2.2 / 32-
RSC-2.4 / 35
H: 275/35 R 19 96 Y
RSC
V: 245/35 R 20 95 Y2.6 / 38-
XL RSC-2.6 / 38
H: 275/30 R 20 97 Y
XL RSC

With high-speed tuning feature

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI

Specifications in bar/PSI with cold tires
245/45 R 18 100 V2.6 / 38 2.9 /42
M+S XL RSC
V: 245/45 R 18 96 Y2.3 / 33-
RSC-2.4 / 35
H: 275/40 R 18 99 Y
RSC
V: 245/40 R 19 94 Y2.4 / 35-
RSC-2.6 / 38
H: 275/35 R 19 96 Y
RSC
V: 245/35 R 20 95 Y2.7 / 39-
XL RSC-2.9 /42
H: 275/30 R 20 97 Y
XL RSC

650i xDrive
Without high-speed tuning feature

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI

Specifications in bar/PSI with cold tires

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI - 1

text_image Diagram showing human silhouette and car with directional arrows indicating movement or orientation

245/45 R 18 100 V M 2.4 / 35 2.6 / 38

+S XL A/S RSC

245/45 R 18 100 V M

+S XL RSC

245/40 R 19 98 V M 2.6 / 38 2.8 / 41

+S XL A/S RSC

V: 245/45 R 18 96 Y 2.2 / 32 -
RSC - 2.4 / 35

H: 275/40 R 18 99 Y RSC

V: 245/40 R 19 94 Y 2.4 / 35 - RSC - 2.4 / 35

H: 275/35 R 19 96 Y RSC

V: 245/35 R 20 95 Y 2.6 / 38 - XL RSC - 2.6 / 38

H: 275/30 R 20 97 Y XL RSC

With high-speed tuning feature

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI

Specifications in bar/PSI with cold tires

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI - 1

text_image Diagram showing human silhouette and car with directional arrows indicating movement or orientation

245/45 R 18 100 V M 2.6 / 38 3.0 / 44

+S XL A/S RSC

245/45 R 18 100 V M

+S XL RSC

245/40 R 19 98 V M 2.9 /42 3.1 / 45

+S XL A/S RSC

Tire size Pressure specifications in bar/PSI

V: 245/45 R 18 96 Y 2.4 / 35 - RSC - 2.6 / 38

H: 275/40 R 18 99 Y RSC

V: 245/40 R 19 94 Y 2.6 / 38 - RSC - 2.6 / 38

H: 275/35 R 19 96 Y RSC

V: 245/35 R 20 95 Y 2.8 / 41 - XL RSC - 2.8 / 41

H: 275/30 R 20 97 Y XL RSC

Tire identification marks

Tire size

255/50 R 19 103 Y

255: nominal width in mm

50: aspect ratio in %

R: radial tire code

19: rim diameter in inches

103: load rating, not for ZR tires

Y: speed rating, before the R on ZR tires

Speed letter

T = up to 118 mph, 190 km/h

H = up to 131 mph, 210 km/h

V = up to 150 mph, 240 km/h

W = up to 167 mph, 270 km/h

Y = up to 186 mph, 300 km/h

Tire Identification Number

DOT code: DOT xxxx xxx 3510

xxxx: manufacturer code for the tire brand

xxx: tire size and tire design

3510: tire age

Tires with DOT codes meet the guidelines of the U.S. Department of Transportation.

Tire age

DOT ... 3510: the tire was manufactured in the 35th week in 2010.

Recommendation

Regardless of wear, replace tires at least every 6 years.

Uniform Tire Quality Grading

Quality grades can be found where applicable on the tire sidewall between tread shoulder and maximum section width.

For example: Treadwear 200; Traction AA; Temperature A

DOT Quality Grades

Treadwear

Traction AA A B C

Temperature A B C

All passenger car tires must conform to Federal Safety Requirements in addition to these grades.

Treadwear

The treadwear grade is a comparative rating based on the wear rate of the tire when tested under controlled conditions on a specified government test course. For example, a tire graded 150 would wear one and one-half, 1 g, times as well on the government course as a tire graded 100. The relative performance of tires depends upon the actual conditions of their use, however, and may depart significantly from the norm due to variations in driving habits, service practices and differences in road characteristics and climate.

Traction

The traction grades, from highest to lowest, are AA, A, B, and C.

Those grades represent the tire's ability to stop on wet pavement as measured under controlled conditions on specified government test surfaces of asphalt and concrete. A tire marked C may have poor traction performance.

The traction grade assigned to this tire is based on straight-ahead braking traction tests, and does not include acceleration, cornering, hydroplaning, or peak traction characteristics.

Temperature

The temperature grades are A, the highest, B, and C, representing the tire's resistance to the generation of heat and its ability to dissipate heat when tested under controlled conditions on a specified indoor laboratory test wheel. Sustained high temperature can cause the material of the tire to degenerate and reduce tire life, and excessive temperature can lead to sudden tire failure. The grade C corresponds to a level of performance which all passenger car tires must meet under the Federal Motor Vehicle Safety Standard No. 109. Grades Band A represent higher levels of performance on the laboratory test wheel than the minimum required by law.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Temperature - 1

Temperature grade for this tire

The temperature grade for this tire is established for a tire that is properly inflated and not overloaded. Excessive speed, underinflation, or excessive loading, either separately or in combination, can cause heat buildup and possible tire failure.

If necessary, have the vehicle towed.

RSC - Run-flat tires

Run-flat tires, refer to page 253, are labeled with a circular symbol containing the letters RSC marked on the sidewall.

M+S

Winter and all-season tires with better cold weather performance than summer tires.

Tire tread

Summer tires

Do not drive with a tire tread depth of less than 0.12 in/3 mm.

There is an increased danger of hydroplaning if the tread depth is less than 0.12 in/3 mm.

Winter tires

Do not drive with a tire tread depth of less than 0.16 in/4 mm.

Below a tread depth of 0.16 in/4 mm, tires are less suitable for winter operation.

Minimum tread depth
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Winter tires - 1

natural_image 3D rendered diagram of a vehicle's wheel and suspension components, showing no text or symbols

Wear indicators are distributed around the tire's circumference and have the legally required minimum height of 0.063 in/1.6 mm.

They are marked on the side of the tire with TWI, Tread Wear Indicator.

Tire damage

General information

Inspect your tires often for damage, foreign objects lodged in the tread, and tread wear.

Notes

Driving over rough or damaged road surfaces, as well as debris, curbs and other obstacles can cause serious damage to wheels, tires and suspension parts. This is more likely to occur with low-profile tires, which provide less cushioning

between the wheel and the road. Be careful to avoid road hazards and reduce your speed, especially if your vehicle is equipped with low-profile tires.

Indications of tire damage or other vehicle defects:

▶ Unusual vibrations during driving.
▶ Unusual handling such as a strong tendency to pull to the left or right.

Damage can, e. g., be caused by driving over curbs, road damage, or similar things.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 1

In case of tire damage

If there are indications of tire damage, reduce your speed immediately and have the wheels and tires checked right away; otherwise, there is the increased risk of an accident.

Drive carefully to the next service center or tire shop.

If necessary, have the vehicle towed.

Otherwise, tire damage can be life-threatening for vehicle occupants and other traffic participants.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 2

Repair of tire damage

For safety reasons, the manufacturer of your vehicle recommends that you do not have damaged tires repaired; they should be replaced. Otherwise, damage can occur as a result.

Changing wheels and tires

Mounting

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Mounting - 1

Information on mounting tires

Have mounting and balancing performed only by a service center or tire specialist.

If this work is not carried out properly, there is the danger of subsequent damage and related safety hazards.

Wheel and tire combination

Information on the correct wheel-tire combination and rim versions for your vehicle can be obtained from your service center.

Incorrect wheel and tire combinations impair the function of a variety of systems such as ABS or DSC.

To maintain good handling and vehicle response, use only tires with a single tread configuration from a single manufacturer.

Following tire damage, have the original wheel and tire combination remounted on the vehicle as soon as possible.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Wheel and tire combination - 1

Approved wheels and tires

The manufacturer of your vehicle recommends that you use only wheels and tires that have been approved for your particular vehicle model.

For example, despite having the same official size ratings, variations can lead to body contact and with it, the risk of severe accidents.

The manufacturer of your vehicle cannot evaluate non-approved wheels and tires to determine if they are suited for use, and therefore cannot ensure the operating safety of the vehicle if they are mounted.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Recommended tire brands - 1

natural_image Close-up of a weather tire with a star marking on its side (no text or symbols visible)

For each tire size, the manufacturer of your vehicle recommends certain tire brands. These can be identified by a star on the tire sidewall.

With proper use, these tires meet the highest standards for safety and handling.

New tires

Due to technical factors associated with their manufacture, tires do not achieve their full traction potential until after an initial breaking-in period.

Drive conservatively for the first 200 miles/300 km.

Retreaded tires

The manufacturer of your vehicle does not recommend the use of retreaded tires.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Retreaded tires - 1

Retreaded tires

Possibly substantial variations in the design and age of the tire casing structures can limit service life and have a negative impact on road safety.

Winter tires

The manufacturer of your vehicle recommends winter tires for winter roads or at temperatures below +45 °F/+7 °C.

Although so-called all-season M+S tires do provide better winter traction than summer tires, they do not provide the same level of performance as winter tires.

Maximum speed of winter tires

If the maximum speed of the vehicle is higher than the permissible speed for the winter tires, then display a corresponding sign in the field of vision. You can obtain this sign from the tire specialist or from your service center.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Maximum speed of winter tires - 1

Maximum speed for winter tires

Do not exceed the maximum speed for the winter tires; otherwise, tire damage and accidents can occur.

Run-flat tires

For your own safety, only use run-flat tires. No spare tire is available in the case of a flat tire. Your service center will be glad to advise you.

Rotating wheels between axles

The manufacturer of your vehicle advises against swapping wheels between the front and rear axles.

This can impair the handling characteristics.

Storage

Store wheels and tires in a cool, dry place with as little exposure to light as possible.

Always protect tires against all contact with oil, grease and fuels.

Do not exceed the maximum tire inflation pressure indicated on the side wall of the tire.

Run-flat tires

Label
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Run-flat tires - 1

natural_image Close-up of a car tire with a logo on the rim (no visible text or symbols)

RSC label on the tire sidewall.

The wheels are composed of special rims and tires that are self-supporting, to a limited degree.

The support of the sidewall allows the tire to remain drivable to a restricted degree in the event of a pressure loss.

Continued driving with a damaged tire, refer to page 94.

Changing run-flat tires

For your own safety, only use run-flat tires. No spare tire is available in the case of a flat tire. Your service center will be glad to advise you.

Snow chains

Only certain types of fine-link snow chains have been tested by the manufacturer of your vehicle, classified as road-safe and recommended.

Consult your service center for more information.

Use

Use only in pairs on the rear wheels, equipped with the tires of the following size:

225/55 R 17.

245/45 R 18.

Follow the chain manufacturer's instructions.

Make sure that the snow chains are always sufficiently tight. Retighten as needed according to the chain manufacturer's instructions.

Do not initialize the Flat Tire Monitor after mounting snow chains, as doing so may result in incorrect readings.

Do not initialize the Tire Pressure Monitor after mounting snow chains, as doing so may result in incorrect readings.

When driving with snow chains, briefly activate Dynamic Traction Control if necessary.

Maximum speed with snow chains

Do not exceed a speed of 30 mph/50 km/h when using snow chains.

Snow chain detection

The concept

When using snow chains, you should set whether you are driving with or without snow chains via the iDrive.

The snow chain detection system supports you by automatically showing the detected state on the Control Display.

When snow chains are in use, the rear axle steering of the Integral Active Steering is deactivated automatically.

At speeds above the maximum allowable speed with snow chains of 30 mph/50 km/h, the rear axle steering is activated again automatically.

Activating the status

  1. "Settings"
  2. "Tire chains"
  3. "Tire chains installed"

Automatic detection

If functioning properly:

▶ Snow chains are mounted. The setting is not activated ☐

After you drive a short distance, a Check Control message is shown and the state is activated automatically.

Confirm the automatic activation.

▶ Snow chains are not mounted. The setting is activated √

At speeds above 30 mph/50 km/h, a Check Control message is displayed. Deactivate the status manually.

If not functioning properly:

▶ Snow chains are mounted. The setting is not activated ☐

A Check Control message is not displayed.

The automatic detection system is malfunctioning. Activate the status manually.

Activating/deactivating rear axle steering

If the status indicating that snow chains are in use is activated, the rear axle steering is deactivated automatically.

At speeds above 30 mph/50 km/h, the rear axle steering is activated again, even though snow chains are in use.

Engine compartment

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment

is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e. g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Important features in the engine compartment
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 1

text_image 1 2 3 4 5 BMW BMW 6

1 Vehicle identification number
2 Jump-starting, negative terminal
3 Washer fluid reservoir

4 Jump-starting, positive terminal
5 Oil filler neck.
6 Coolant reservoir

Hood

Opening the hood

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the hood - 1

Working in the engine compartment

Never attempt to perform any service or repair operations on your vehicle without the necessary professional technical training.

If you are unfamiliar with the statutory guidelines, have any work on the vehicle performed only by a service center.

If this work is not carried out properly, there is the danger of subsequent damage and related safety hazards.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the hood - 2

Never reach into the engine compartment

Never reach into the intermediate spaces or gaps in the engine compartment. Otherwise, there is risk of injury, e.g. from rotating or hot parts.

  1. Pull the lever.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the hood - 3

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the side door, seatbelt, and dashboard (no text or symbols visible)
  1. Press the release handle and open the hood.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the hood - 4

natural_image Front view of a car with BMW logo and grille (no visible text or symbols)
  1. Be careful of protruding parts on the hood.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the hood - 5

natural_image Illustration of a snow-covered aircraft with two black components mounted on a tripod (no text or symbols)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Opening the hood - 6

Danger of injury when the hood is open

There is a danger of injury from protruding parts when the hood is open.

Closing the hood

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Closing the hood - 1

natural_image Front view of a car's head with grille and headlights, showing a white arrow pointing to the grille (no text or symbols visible)

Let the hood drop from a height of approx. 16 in/40 cm and push down on it to lock it fully.

The hood must audibly engage on both sides.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Closing the hood - 2

Hood open when driving

If you see any signs that the hood is not completely closed while driving, pull over immediately and close it securely.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Closing the hood - 3

Danger of pinching

Make sure that the closing path of the hood is clear; otherwise, injuries may result.

Engine oil

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

General information

The engine oil consumption is dependent on the driving style and driving conditions.

Therefore, regularly check the engine oil level after refueling.

Check oil level

The concept

The oil level is monitored electronically and displayed on the Control Display.

Requirements

The engine must be running and warm after the vehicle has been driven for at least 6 miles/10 km.
The vehicle is stopped or being driven on a level roadway.

Displaying the oil level

  1. "Vehicle Info"
  2. "Vehicle status"
  3. "Engine oil level"

Possible messages

▶ "Engine oil level OK"
▶ "Measurement not possible at this time."
▶ "Measuring engine oil level..."

Duration with the engine running: approx. 3 minutes.

Duration while driving: approx. 5 minutes.

▶ "Engine oil level below minimum. Add 1 quart!"
Add oil within the next 125 miles/200 km.

▶ "Engine oil level too high! Have this checked."

Have the vehicle checked immediately.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Possible messages - 1

Too much engine oil

Have the vehicle checked immediately; otherwise, surplus oil can lead to engine damage.

▶ "Measurement inactive. Have this checked."

Note the newly calculated remaining mileage until the next oil service. Have the system checked as soon as possible.

Adding engine oil

Filler neck
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adding engine oil - 1

natural_image Close-up of a black circular knob with a star logo, partially overlaid by a white arrow pointing upward (no text or symbols visible)

When the indicator lights up in the instrument cluster, add 1 US quart/liter of engine oil within the next 125 miles/200 km.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Adding engine oil - 2

Protect children

Keep oil, grease, etc., out of reach of children and heed the warnings on the containers to prevent health risks.

Oil types for refilling

Notes

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 1

No oil additives

Oil additives may lead to engine damage.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 2

Viscosity grades for engine oils

When selecting an engine oil, ensure that

the engine oil belongs to one of the viscosity grades SAE 0W-40, SAE 0W-30, SAE 5W-40, and SAE 5W-30 or malfunctions or engine damage may occur.

The engine oil quality is critical for the life of the engine.

Some types of oils in some cases are not available in all countries.

Approved oil types

Specification

BMW High Performance SAE 5W-30

BMW Longlife-01

BMW Longlife-01 FE

Additional information about the approved types of oils can be requested from the service center.

Alternative oil types

If the approved engine oils are not available, up to 1 US quart/liter of an oil with the following specification can be added:

Specification

API SM or superior grade specification

Oil change

An oil change should be carried out by your service center only.

BMW recommends

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Oil change - 1

Coolant

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Danger of burns from hot engine

Do not open the cooling system while the engine is hot; otherwise, escaping coolant may cause burns.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 2

Suitable additives

Only use suitable additives; otherwise, engine damage may occur. The additives are harmful to your health.

Coolant consists of water and additives.

Not all commercially available additives are suitable for your vehicle. Ask your service center for suitable additives.

Coolant level

Checking

  1. Let the engine cool.
  2. Turn the cap of the coolant reservoir slightly counterclockwise to allow any excess pressure to dissipate, and then open it.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Checking - 1

natural_image Mechanical component diagram showing a rotating knob with directional arrows (no text or symbols)
  1. The coolant level is correct if it lies between the minimum and maximum marks in the filler neck.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Checking - 2

text_image max min
  1. If the coolant is low, slowly add coolant up to the specified level; do not overfill.
  2. Turn the cap until there is an audible click.
  3. Have the cause of the coolant loss eliminated as soon as possible.

Disposal

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Disposal - 1

Comply with the relevant environmental protection regulations when disposing of coolant and coolant additives.

Maintenance

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

BMW Maintenance System

The maintenance system directs you to required maintenance measures and thereby supports you in maintaining road safety and the operational reliability of the vehicle.

Condition Based Service CBS

Sensors and special algorithms take into account the driving conditions of your vehicle. Based on this, Condition Based Service determines the maintenance requirements.

The system makes it possible to adapt the amount of maintenance you need to your user profile.

Details on the service requirements, refer to page 74, can be displayed on the Control Display.

Service data in the remote control

Information on the required maintenance is continuously stored in the remote control. Your service center will read out this data and suggest the right array of service procedures for your vehicle.

Therefore, hand your service specialist the remote control that you used most recently.

Storage periods

Storage periods during which the vehicle battery was disconnected are not taken into account.

If this occurs, have a service center update the time-dependent maintenance procedures, such as checking brake fluid and, if necessary, changing the engine oil and the microfilter/activated-charcoal filter.

Service and Warranty Information Booklet for US models and Warranty and Service Guide Booklet for Canadian models

Please consult your Service and Warranty Information Booklet for US models and Warranty and Service Guide Booklet for Canadian models for additional information on service requirements.

Maintenance and repair should be performed by your service center. Make sure to have regular maintenance procedures recorded in the vehicle's Service and Warranty Information Booklet for US models, and in the Warranty and Service Guide Booklet for Canadian models. These entries are proof of regular maintenance.

Socket for OBD Onboard Diagnosis

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Socket for OBD Onboard Diagnosis - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard and steering wheel (no visible text or symbols)

There is an OBD socket on the driver's side for checking the primary components in the vehicle emissions.

Emissions

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Emissions - 1

The warning lamp lights up:

Emissions are deteriorating. Have the vehicle checked as soon as possible.

Canadian model: warning light indicates the engine symbol.

The warning lamp flashes under certain circumstances:

This indicates that there is excessive misfiring in the engine.

Reduce the vehicle speed and have the system checked immediately; otherwise, serious engine misfiring within a brief period can seriously damage emission control components, in particular the catalytic converter.

Fuel cap

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Fuel cap - 1

The indicator lamp lights up.

If the fuel cap is not properly tightened, the OBD system may conclude that fuel

vapor is escaping. If the cap is then tightened, the display should go out in a short time.

Data memory

Your vehicle records data relating to vehicle operation, faults and user settings. These data are stored in the remote control and can be read out with suitable devices, particularly when the vehicle is serviced. The data obtained in this way provide valuable information for service processes and repair or for optimizing and developing vehicle functions further.

In addition, if you signed a service contract for Assist, certain vehicle data can be sent directly from the vehicle to facilitate the desired services.

Replacing components

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Onboard vehicle tool kit

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Onboard vehicle tool kit - 1

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle showing a black panel with white arrows pointing to a door (no text or symbols visible)

The onboard vehicle tool kit is stored under the cargo floor cover in the cargo area.

Wiper blade replacement

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Do not fold down the wipers without wiper blades

Do not fold down the wipers if wiper blades have not been installed; this may damage the wind-shield.

Replacing the wiper blades

  1. To change the wiper blades, fold up, refer to page 65, the wiper arms.
  2. Fold up the wipers.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Replacing the wiper blades - 1

natural_image Diagram of a car interior showing two directional arrows indicating movement or flow, with no visible text or symbols.
  1. Position the wiper blade in a horizontal position.
  2. Remove the wiper blade toward one side.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Replacing the wiper blades - 2

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the dashboard and seat area with a directional arrow indicating movement (no text or symbols present)

Lamp and bulb replacement

General information

Lamps and bulbs make an essential contribution to vehicle safety.

The manufacturer of the vehicle recommends that you entrust corresponding procedures to the service center if you are unfamiliar with them or they are not described here.

You can obtain a selection of replacement bulbs at the service center.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Danger of burns

Only change bulbs when they are cool; otherwise, there is the danger of getting burned.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Danger of burns - 1

Working on the lighting system

When working on the lighting system, you should always switch off the lights affected to prevent short circuits.

To avoid possible injury or equipment damage when replacing bulbs, observe any instructions provided by the bulb manufacturer.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Working on the lighting system - 1

Do not perform work/bulb replacement on xenon headlamps

Have any work on the xenon lighting system, including bulb replacement, performed only by a service center. Due to the high voltage present in the system, there is the danger of fatal injuries if work is carried out improperly.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Do not perform work/bulb replacement on xenon headlamps - 1

Do not touch the bulbs

Do not touch the glass of new bulbs with your bare hands, as even minute amounts of contamination will burn into the bulb's surface and reduce its service life.

Use a clean tissue, cloth or something similar, or hold the bulb by its base.

Light-emitting diodes (LEDs)

Light-emitting diodes installed behind a cover serve as the light source for controls, display elements and other equipment.

These light-emitting diodes, which are related to conventional lasers, are officially designated as Class 1 light-emitting diodes.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Light-emitting diodes (LEDs) - 1

Do not remove the covers

Do not remove the covers, and never stare into the unfiltered light for several hours; otherwise, irritation of the retina could result.

Headlamp glass

Condensation can form on the inside of the external lamps in cool or humid weather. When driving with the light switched on, the condensation evaporates after a short time. The headlamp glasses do not need to be changed.

If the headlamps do not dim despite driving with the light switched on, increasing humidity forms, e. g. water droplets in the light, have the service center check this.

Front lamps, bulb replacement

Xenon headlamps

Because of the long life of these bulbs, the likelihood of failure is very low. Switching the lamps on and off frequently shortens their life.

If a bulb fails, switch on the front fog lamps and continue the trip with great care. Comply with local regulations.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Xenon headlamps - 1

Do not perform work/bulb replacement on xenon headlamps

Have any work on the xenon lighting system, including bulb replacement, performed only by a service center. Due to the high voltage present in the system, there is the danger of fatal injuries if work is carried out improperly.

Low beams and high beams are designed with xenon technology.

For checking and adjusting headlamp aim, please contact your BMW center.

LED headlamps, Light-emitting diodes (LEDs) or light modules

With Xenon-headlamps, the following lamps are designed with LED technology or as a light module:

▶ Parking lamps and roadside parking lamps
▶ Turn signal lamps
▶ Front fog lamps
Daytime running lights

With LED headlamps, all front lamps are designed with LED technology or as a light module.

Contact your service center in the event of a malfunction.

Follow the General instructions on lamps and bulbs., refer to page 262

Turning lamp on the Xenon headlamp

Follow the General instructions on lamps and bulbs., refer to page 262

The illustration shows the left side of the engine compartment.

55-watt bulb, H3

  1. Turn the cap and remove it.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Turning lamp on the Xenon headlamp - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the intake manifold and engine compartment with a highlighted circular component (no text or symbols visible)
  1. Detach the wire bracket.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Turning lamp on the Xenon headlamp - 2

natural_image Mechanical component diagram showing a central shaft and surrounding gears (no text or labels)
  1. Disconnect the cable at the plug-in connection and remove the bulb.

  2. Insert the new bulb. Ensure that the bulb has the correct orientation. Because of its shape, the bulb can only be inserted in one direction.

  3. Secure the bulb with the wire bracket.

  4. Connect the bulb.

  5. Mount the cap.

Tail lamps, bulb replacement

At a glance
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tail lamps, bulb replacement - 1

text_image 1 2 6 4 5 4 3

1 Turn signal/brake lamp

2 Reversing lamp

3 Inside brake lamp

4 Tail lamp

5 Outside brake lamp

6 Rear reflector

Turn signal, outer brake, tail, and license plate lamps

Follow the general instructions on lamps and bulbs, refer to page 262.

These lights are made using LED technology.

Contact your service center in the event of a malfunction.

Lamps in the trunk lid

Access to the lamps
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Lamps in the trunk lid - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car rear bumper with two white arrows pointing to the side panel (no text or symbols visible)

If necessary, remove the fasteners using the screwdriver from the onboard vehicle tool kit and fold away the cover.

Inside brake lamp

Follow the general instructions on lamps and bulbs, refer to page 262.

24-watt bulb, HP24W

  1. Squeeze the bulb holder and pull it out.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Inside brake lamp - 1

natural_image Mechanical assembly diagram showing internal components with no visible text or symbols
  1. Pull off the connector.

  2. Replace the bulb.

  3. Mount the bulb holder and the cover of the trunk lid in reverse order.

Reversing lamp

Follow the general instructions on lamps and bulbs, refer to page 262.

16-watt bulb, W16W

  1. Unscrew the bulb holder counterclockwise.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Reversing lamp - 1

natural_image Mechanical component diagram showing a valve mechanism with directional arrows (no text or symbols)
  1. Pull out the bulb and replace it.

  2. Mount the bulb holder and the cover of the trunk lid in reverse order.

Changing wheels

Notes

The vehicle equipment does not include a spare tire.

When using run-flat tires or tire sealants, a tire does not need to be changed immediately in the event of pressure loss due to a flat tire.

The tools for changing wheels are available as accessories from your service center.

Jacking points for the vehicle jack

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Jacking points for the vehicle jack - 1

natural_image Side view of a car showing front and side structural components with upward arrows indicating alignment (no text or symbols)

The jacking points for the vehicle jack are located in the positions shown.

Vehicle battery

Maintenance

The battery is maintenance-free, i.e., the electrolyte will last for the life of the battery.

Your service center will be glad to advise you on questions regarding the battery.

Battery replacement

Use approved vehicle batteries only. Only use vehicle batteries that have been approved for your vehicle by the manufacturer; otherwise, the vehicle could be damaged and systems or functions may not be fully available.

After a battery replacement, have the battery registered on the vehicle by your service center

to ensure that all comfort functions are fully available and that any Check Control messages are no longer displayed.

Charging the battery

In the vehicle, only charge the battery via the terminals, refer to page 269, in the engine compartment with the engine off.

Power failure

After a temporary power loss, some equipment needs to be reinitialized.

Individual settings need to be reprogrammed:

▶ Seat, mirror, and steering wheel memory: store the positions again.

Time: update.

Date: update.

▶ Radio station: save again.

▶ Navigation system: wait for the operability of the navigation.

Disposing of old batteries

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Disposing of old batteries - 1

Have old batteries disposed of by your service center or bring them to a recycling center.

Maintain the battery in an upright position for transport and storage. Secure the battery so that it does not tip over during transport.

Fuses

Notes

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 1

Replacing fuses

Never attempt to repair a blown fuse and do not replace a defective fuse with a substitute of another color or amperage rating; this could lead to a circuit overload, ultimately resulting in a fire in the vehicle.

Plastic tweezers and information on the fuse types and locations are stored in the fuse box in the cargo area.

In the glove compartment

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - In the glove compartment - 1

text_image Diagram showing vehicle door opening with numbered arrows indicating parts of the door and window

Push the handle up, arrow 1, and open the lid, arrow 2.

In the cargo area

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - In the cargo area - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car showing the backrest tray and side panel, with a black arrow pointing to one side panel (no text or symbols visible)

Open the cover on the right side trim.

Information on the fuse types and locations is found on a separate sheet.

Breakdown assistance

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Hazard warning flashers
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Vehicle equipment - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car air intake console with warning symbol and control buttons (no text or labels)

The button is located in the center console.

Emergency Request

Requirements

▶ Equipment version with full preparation package mobile phone.

An Emergency Request can be made, even if no mobile phones are paired with the vehicle.

▶ BMW Assist is activated.
The radio ready state is switched on.
The BMW Assist system is logged in to a wireless communications network supported by BMW Assist.
The Assist system is functional.

Only press the SOS button in an emergency.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Requirements - 1

Emergency Request not guaranteed

For technical reasons, the Emergency Request cannot be guaranteed under unfavorable conditions.

Service contract

▶ After your contract with BMW Assist has expired, the BMW Assist system can be deactivated by the service center without you having to visit a workshop.

After deactivation, an Emergency Request is no longer possible.

▶ Under certain circumstances, the system can be reactivated by a service center after you sign a new contract.

Initiating an Emergency Request
BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Service contract - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car headrest with dashboard and air vent (no text or symbols visible)
  1. Press the cover briefly to open it.

  2. Press the SOS button until the LED in the button lights up.

The LED lights up: an Emergency Request was initiated.

If the situation allows, wait in your vehicle until the voice connection has been established.

The LED flashes if the connection to the BMW Assist Response Center has been established.

After the Emergency Request arrives at the BMW Assist Response Center, the BMW

Assist Response Center contacts you and takes further steps to help you.

Even if you are unable to respond, the BMW Assist Response Center can take further steps to help you under certain circumstances.

For this purpose, data that are used to determine the necessary rescue measures, such as the current position of the vehicle if it can be established, are transmitted to the BMW Assist Response Center.

If the LED is flashing but the BMW Assist Response Center cannot be heard on the hands-free system, the hands-free system may be malfunctioning. However, the BMW Assist Response Center may still be able to hear you.

Initiating an Emergency Request automatically

Under certain conditions, an Emergency Request is automatically initiated immediately after a severe accident. Automatic Collision Notification is not affected by pressing the SOS button.

Warning triangle

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Warning triangle - 1

natural_image Top-down view of a car rear panel showing front, rear, and side views with no visible text or symbols

The warning triangle is located on the inside of the trunk lid.

To remove, loosen the bracket.

First aid kit

The first aid kit is located in the insert in the rear seat backrest.

  1. Pull the release in the direction of the arrow, and remove the insert from the front. If necessary, when pulling the release, press against the insert.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - First aid kit - 1

natural_image Interior view of a car seatbelt with a black seatbelt inserted into the seat area (no text or symbols visible)
  1. Remove the first aid kit.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - First aid kit - 2

natural_image Close-up of a medical device with a black cross symbol and label, mounted on a white surface (no readable text or symbols)

When replacing the insert, place both pins into the rail at the bottom and press the insert back in place until a 'click' is heard. Ensure that the rear seat backrest upholstery is not damaged.

Some of the articles have a limited service life.

Check the expiration dates of the contents regularly and replace any expired items promptly.

Roadside Assistance

Service availability

Roadside Assistance can be reached around the clock in many countries. You can obtain assistance there in the event of a vehicle breakdown.

Roadside Assistance

The Roadside Assistance, refer to page 234 phone number can be viewed on the iDrive or a connection to Roadside Assistance can be established directly.

Jump starting

Notes

If the battery is discharged, an engine can be started using the battery of another vehicle and two jumper cables. Only use jumper cables with fully insulated clamp handles.

To prevent personal injury or damage to both vehicles, adhere strictly to the following procedure.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 1

Do not touch live parts

To avoid the risk of potentially fatal injury, always avoid all contact with electrical components while the engine is running.

Preparation

  1. Check whether the battery of the other vehicle has a voltage of 12 volts. This information can be found on the battery.
  2. Switch off the engine of the assisting vehicle.
  3. Switch off any electronic systems/power consumers in both vehicles.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Preparation - 1

Bodywork contact between vehicles

Make sure that there is no contact between the bodywork of the two vehicles; otherwise, there is the danger of short circuits.

Starting aid terminals

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting aid terminals - 1

Connecting order

Connect the jumper cables in the correct order; otherwise, there is the danger of injury from sparking.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting aid terminals - 2

natural_image Interior view of a car dashboard with a small component inserted, showing no visible text or symbols.

The so-called starting aid terminal in the engine compartment acts as the battery's positive terminal.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Starting aid terminals - 3

natural_image Mechanical component diagram showing a bolt and lever mechanism (no text or symbols)

The body ground or a special nut acts as the negative terminal.

Connecting the cables

  1. Pull off the cap of the BMW starting aid terminal.
  2. Attach one terminal clamp of the positive jumper cable to the positive terminal of the battery, or to the corresponding starting aid terminal of the vehicle providing assistance.
  3. Attach the other end of the cable to the positive terminal of the battery, or to the corresponding starting aid terminal of the vehicle to be started.
  4. Attach one terminal clamp of the negative jumper cable to the negative terminal of the battery, or to the corresponding engine or body ground of the vehicle providing assistance.
  5. Attach the other end of the cable to the negative terminal of the battery, or to the corresponding engine or body ground of the vehicle to be started.

Starting the engine

Never use spray fluids to start the engine.

  1. Start the engine of the assisting vehicle and let it run for several minutes at an increased idle speed.

  2. Start the engine of the vehicle being started in the usual way.

If the first starting attempt is not successful, wait a few minutes before making another attempt in order to allow the discharged battery to recharge.

  1. Let both engines run for several minutes.

  2. Disconnect the jumper cables in the reverse order.

Check the battery and recharge if necessary.

Tow-starting and towing

Manual transmission

Observe before towing your vehicle

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Observe before towing your vehicle - 1

The parking brake is blocked

The parking brake cannot be released manually.

When the parking brake is blocked, do not tow with the front axle lifted or the vehicle can be damaged.

Contact your service center.

Gearshift lever in neutral position.

Towing

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Towing - 1

Follow the towing instructions

Follow all towing instructions; otherwise, vehicle damage or accidents may occur.

▶ Make sure that the ignition is switched on; otherwise, the low beams, tail lamps, turn signals, and windshield wipers may be unavailable.

Do not tow the vehicle with the rear axle tilted, as the front wheels could turn.
When the engine is stopped, there is no power assist. Consequently, more force needs to be applied when braking and steering.
▶ Larger steering wheel movements are required.

Tow truck

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tow truck - 1

natural_image Illustration of three types of cars: a tow truck, a flatbed car, and a parked car with a roof rack (no text or symbols)

Have your vehicle transported with a tow truck with a so-called lift bar or on a flat bed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tow truck - 2

Do not lift the vehicle

Do not lift the vehicle by the tow fitting or body and chassis parts; otherwise, damage may result.

Automatic transmission: transporting your vehicle

Note

Your vehicle is not permitted to be towed.

Therefore, contact a service center in the event of a breakdown.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Note - 1

Do not have the vehicle towed

Have your vehicle transported on a loading platform only; otherwise, damage may occur.

Tow truck

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tow truck - 1

natural_image Three cartoon-style cars with a flatbed cargo truck, each with a diagonal line crossing it (no text or symbols)

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tow truck - 2

Do not lift the vehicle

Do not lift the vehicle by the tow fitting or body and chassis parts; otherwise, damage may result.

Use the tow fitting screwed in at the front for maneuvering the vehicle only.

Towing other vehicles

General information

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 1

Light towing vehicle

Your vehicle must not be lighter than the vehicle being towed; otherwise, it will not be possible to control vehicle response.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - General information - 2

Attaching the tow bar/tow rope correctly

Attach the tow bar or tow rope to the tow fitting; connecting it to other vehicle parts may cause damage.

▷ Switch on the hazard warning system, depending on local regulations.
If the electrical system has failed, clearly identify the vehicle being towed by placing a sign or a warning triangle in the rear window.

Tow bar

The tow fittings used should be on the same side on both vehicles.

Should it prove impossible to avoid mounting the tow bar at an offset angle, please observe the following:

▶ Maneuvering capability is limited during cornering.
The tow bar will generate lateral forces if it is secured with an offset.

Tow rope

When starting to tow the vehicle, make sure that the tow rope is taut.

To avoid jerking and the associated stresses on the vehicle components when towing, always use nylon ropes or nylon straps.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tow rope - 1

Attaching the tow rope correctly

Only secure the tow rope on the tow fitting; otherwise, damage can occur when it is secured on other parts of the vehicle.

Tow fitting

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tow fitting - 1

natural_image Interior view of a vehicle showing a car trunk and side panel with a white arrow pointing to the front panel (no text or symbols visible)

The screw-in tow fitting should always be carried in the vehicle. It can be screwed in at the front or rear of the BMW. It is contained in the onboard vehicle tool kit under the cargo floor cover.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Tow fitting - 2

Tow fitting, information on use

▶ Use only the tow fitting provided with the vehicle and screw it all the way in.

▶ Use the tow fitting for towing on paved roads only.
▶ Avoid lateral loading of the tow fitting, e.g., do not lift the vehicle by the tow fitting.

Otherwise, damage to the tow fitting and the vehicle can occur.

Screw thread

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Screw thread - 1

natural_image Side-by-side comparison of a white car's front and side views, showing structural details (no text or symbols)

Push out the cover by pressing on the top edge.

Tow-starting

Automatic transmission

Do not tow-start the vehicle.

Due to the automatic transmission, the engine cannot be started by tow-starting.

Have the cause of the starting difficulties remedied.

Manual transmission

If possible, do not tow-start the vehicle but start the engine by jump-starting, refer to page 269. If the vehicle is equipped with a catalytic converter, only tow-start while the engine is cold.

  1. Switch on the hazard warning system and comply with local regulations.
  2. Ignition, refer to page 57, on.
  3. Engage third gear.
  4. Have the vehicle tow-started with the clutch pressed and slowly release the clutch. After the engine starts, immediately press on the clutch again.
  5. Stop at a suitable location, remove the tow bar or rope, and switch off the hazard warning system.
  6. Have the vehicle checked.

Care

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Car washes

Notes

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 1

Steam jets or high-pressure washers

When using steam jets or high-pressure washers, hold them a sufficient distance away and use a maximum temperature of 140^ F/60 ^ C.

Holding them too close or using excessively high pressures or temperatures can cause damage or preliminary damage that may then lead to long-term damage.

Follow the operating instructions for the high-pressure washer.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 2

Cleaning sensors/cameras with high-pressure washers

When using high-pressure washers, do not spray the exterior sensors and cameras, e.g., Park Distance Control, for extended periods of time and only from a distance of at least 12 in/30 cm.

Wash your vehicle frequently, particularly in winter.

Intense soiling and road salt can damage the vehicle.

Washing in automatic car washes

Give preference to cloth car washes or those that use soft brushes in order to avoid paint damage.

Notes

Note the following:

▶ Make sure that the wheels and tires are not damaged by the transport mechanisms.
▶ Fold in the exterior mirrors; otherwise, they may be damaged, depending on the width of the vehicle.
▶ Deactivate the rain sensor, refer to page 65, to avoid unintentional wiper activation.
In some cases, an unintentional alarm can be triggered by the interior motion sensor of the alarm system. Follow the instructions on avoiding an unintentional alarm, refer to page 41.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Notes - 1

Guide rails in car washes

Avoid car washes with guide rails higher than 4 in/10 cm; otherwise, the vehicle body could be damaged.

Before driving into a car wash

In order to ensure that the vehicle can roll in a car wash, take the following steps:

Manual transmission:

  1. Release the parking brake, refer to page 61.
  2. Drive into the car wash.
  3. Shift to neutral.
  4. Switch the engine off.
  5. Switch on the ignition.

Automatic transmission:

  1. Release the parking brake, refer to page 61, and deactivate Automatic Hold, refer to page 62.
  2. Drive into the car wash.
  3. Depress the brake pedal as needed.
  4. Engage transmission position N.
  5. Switch the engine off. In this way, the ignition remains switched on, and a Check-Control message is displayed.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Before driving into a car wash - 1

Transmission position P with the ignition off

When the ignition is switched off, position P is engaged automatically. When in an automatic car wash, for example, ensure that the ignition is not switched off accidentally.

The vehicle cannot be locked from the outside when in transmission position N.

A signal is sounded when an attempt is made to lock the vehicle.

Transmission position

Transmission position P is engaged automatically:

▶ When the ignition is switched off.
▶ After approx. 15 minutes.

Headlamps

Do not rub dry and do not use abrasive or caustic cleansers.
Soak areas that have been soiled e.g. due to insects, with shampoo and wash off with water.
- Thaw ice with deicing spray; do not use an ice scraper.

After washing the vehicle

After washing the vehicle, apply the brakes briefly to dry them; otherwise, braking action can be reduced and corrosion of the brake discs can occur.

Vehicle care

Car care products

BMW recommends using cleaning and care products from BMW, since these have been tested and approved.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Car care products - 1

Car care and cleaning products Follow the instructions on the container.

When cleaning the interior, open the doors or windows.

Only use products intended for cleaning vehicles.

Cleansers can contain substances that are dangerous and harmful to your health.

Vehicle paint

Regular care contributes to driving safety and value retention.

Environmental influences can act on the vehicle paint. Tailor the frequency and extent of your car care to these influences.

Leather care

Remove dust from the leather often, using a cloth or vacuum cleaner.

Otherwise, particles of dust and road grime chafe in pores and folds, and lead to increased wear and premature degradation of the leather surface.

To guard against discoloration, such as from clothing, provide leather care roughly every two months.

Clean light-colored leather more frequently because soiling on such surfaces is substantially more visible.

Use leather care products; otherwise, dirt and grease will gradually break down the protective layer of the leather surface.

Suitable care products are available from the service center.

Upholstery material care

Vacuum regularly with a vacuum cleaner.

If they are very dirty, e.g., beverage stains, use a soft sponge or microfiber cloth with a suitable interior cleaner.

Clean the upholstery down to the seams using large sweeping motions. Avoid rubbing the material vigorously.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Upholstery material care - 1

Damage from Velcro® fasteners

Open Velcro® fasteners on pants or other articles of clothing can damage the seat covers. Ensure that any Velcro® fasteners are closed.

Caring for special components

Light-alloy wheels

Use wheel cleaner, particularly during the winter months. Do not use aggressive, acidic, strongly alkaline or abrasive cleaners, or steam jets above 140 °F/60 °C; follow the manufacturer's instructions.

Chrome surfaces

Carefully clean components such as the radiator grille or door handles with an ample supply of water, possibly with shampoo added, particularly when they have been exposed to road salt.

Rubber components

Aside from water, treat only with rubber cleansers.

When cleaning rubber seals, do not use any silicon-containing car care products in order to avoid damage or reduced noise damping.

Fine wood parts

Clean fine wood facing and fine wood components only with a moist rag. Then dry with a soft cloth.

Plastic components

These include:

▶ Imitation leather surfaces.

▶ Headliner.

▷ Lamp lenses.

▶ Instrument cluster cover.

▶ Matte black spray-coated components.

▶ Painted parts in the interior.

Clean with a microfiber cloth.

Lightly dampen the cloth with water.

Do not soak the headliner.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Plastic components - 1

Do not use cleansers that contain alcohol or solvents

Do not use cleansers that contain alcohol or solvents, such as lacquer thinners, heavy-duty grease removers, fuel, or such; this could lead to surface damage.

Safety belts

Dirty belt straps impede the reeling action and thus have a negative impact on safety.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Safety belts - 1

Chemical cleaning

Do not clean chemically; this can destroy rebbing.

Use only a mild soapy solution, with the safety belts clipped into their buckles.

Do not allow the reels to retract the safety belts until they are dry.

Floor carpets and floor mats

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Floor carpets and floor mats - 1

No objects in the area around the pedals Keep floor mats, carpets, and any other objects out of the area of motion of the pedals; otherwise, the function of the pedals could be impeded while driving

Do not place additional floor mats over existing mats or other objects.

Only use floor mats that have been approved for the vehicle and can be properly fixed in place.

Ensure that the floor mats are securely fastened again after they were removed for cleaning, for example.

Floor mats can be removed from the passenger compartment for cleaning.

If the floor carpets are very dirty, clean with a microfiber cloth and water or a textile cleaner. To prevent matting of the carpet, rub back and forth in the direction of travel only.

Sensors/cameras

To clean sensors and cameras, use a cloth moistened with a small amount of glass cleaner.

Displays/screens

Clean the displays with a microfiber cloth.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Displays/screens - 1

Cleaning displays

Do not use chemical or household cleans-

ers.

Keep all fluids and moisture away from the unit.

Otherwise, they could affect or damage surfaces or electrical components.

Avoid pressing too hard when cleaning and do not use abrasive materials; otherwise, damage can result.

Long-term vehicle storage

Your service center can advise you on what to consider when storing the vehicle for longer than three months.

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Long-term vehicle storage - 1

text_image TUESDAY PON day HED HED Online Edition for Part no. 01 40 2 607 971 - 09 11 490

Reference

This chapter contains technical data, short commands for the voice activation system, and an index that will quickly take you to the information you need.

Technical data

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment

is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e. g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

Dimensions

Width, height

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Dimensions - 1

text_image 1 2 3

1 Vehicle height: 53.9 inches / 1,369 mm

2 Vehicle width without mirrors: 74.6 inches / 1,894 mm

3 Vehicle width with mirrors: 81.9 inches / 2,081 mm

Length, wheel base

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - Length, wheel base - 1

natural_image Side profile line drawing of a sedan car with dimension annotations (no text or symbols on the car itself)

1 Wheel base: 112.4 inches / 2,855 mm

2 Length: 192.8 inches / 4,896 mm

Smallest turning circle

Dia.: 38.4 ft/11.7 m xDrive Dia.: 38.7 ft/11.8 m

Weights

640i

Approved gross vehicle weight lbs/kg 4,828/2,190

Load lbs/kg 772/350

Approved front axle load lbs/kg 2,425/1,100

Approved rear axle load lbs/kg 2,668/1,210

Cargo area capacity cu ft/l 16.2/460

650i
Approved gross vehicle weight
Manual transmissionIbs/kg5,115/2,320
Sport automatic transmissionIbs/kg5,115/2,320
Load Ibs/kg 772/350
Approved front axle load Ibs/kg 2,568/1,165
Approved rear axle load Ibs/kg 2,734/1,240
Cargo area capacity cu ft/l 16.2/460
650i xDrive
Approved gross vehicle weight Ibs/kg 5,203/2,360
Load Ibs/kg 772/350
Approved front axle load Ibs/kg 2,690/1,220
Approved rear axle load Ibs/kg 2,756/1,250
Cargo area capacity cu ft/l 16.2/460

Capacities

Notes
Fuel tank US gal/liters approx. 18.5/70 Fuel quality, referto page 244
Windshield and headlamp washer systemUS quarts/liters approx. 5.3/5.0

Short commands of the voice activation system

Vehicle equipment

All standard, country-specific and optional equipment that is offered in the model series is described in this chapter. Therefore, equipment is also described that is not available in a vehicle, e.g., because of the selected optional equipment or country variant. This also applies for safety-related functions and systems.

To have the available spoken instructions read out loud: »Voice commands«

The following short commands are valid for vehicles with voice activation system. They do not work in equipment packages with which only the mobile phone can be operated by voice activation.

General information

Instructions for voice activation system, refer to page 22.

Adjusting

Vehicle

Function Command
Open the main menu. >Main menu<
Open the options. >Options<
Open the settings. >Settings<
Info display of the instrument cluster. >Info Display<
Settings on the Control Display. >Control display<
Open the time and date. >Time and date<
Open the language and units. >Language and units<
Open the speed limit. >Speed<
Open the light. >Lighting<
Open the door lock. >Door locks<
Open the profiles. >Profiles<

Function Command

Open the Driving Mode menu. »Driving mode«

Open the ECO PRO menu. >ECO PRO mode

Equipment

Function Command

Open the air conditioning settings. »Climate«

Open the Head-up Display. >head up display

Vehicle information

Owner's Manual

Function Command

Open the Owner's Manual. »Display Owner's Manual«

Open the Quick Reference Guide. >Quick reference

Open the index. >Owner's Manual

Open the search by pictures. >Search by pictures

Computer

Function Command

Open the computer. >Onboard info

Open the trip computer. >Trip computer

Vehicle

Function Command

Open the vehicle information. >Vehicle info

Open the vehicle status. >Vehicle status

Call up ECO PRO tips. >ECO PRO Tips

Function Command

Open EfficientDynamics menu. >Efficient Dynamics

EfficientDynamics split screen. >Split screen Efficient Dynamics

General information

Function Command
Opens the Navigation menu. >Navigation<
Open the destination entry. >Enter address<
Enter the address. >Enter address<
Enter a town/city. >City<
Enter a state/province. >State<
Enter the postal code. >Postal Code<
Open destination guidance. >Guidance<
Start destination guidance. >Start guidance<
Terminate destination guidance. >Stop guidance<
Open the home address. >Home address<
Open the route criteria. >Route preference<
Open the route. >Route information<
Turn on spoken instructions. >Switch on voice instructions<
Repeat the spoken instruction.>Repeat voice instructions<
Turn off spoken instructions.>Switch off voice instructions<
Display the address book.>Address book<
Display the most recent destinations.>Last destinations<
Open the traffic bulletins.>Traffic Info<
Special destinations.>Points of interest<

Map

Function Command
Display the map. >Map<
Map facing north. >Map facing north<
Map facing the direction of travel. >Map in direction of travel<
Perspective map. >Map perspective view<
Automatic scaling of the map. >Map with automatic scaling<
Scale...feet. >Map scale ... feet<
Scale...meters. >Map scale ... meters< e.g., map scale 100 meters
Scale...kilometers. >Map scale ... kilometers< e.g., map scale 5 kilo-meters
Scale...miles. >Map scale ... miles< e.g., map scale 5 miles

Split screen settings

Function Command
Split screen. >Switch on splitscreen<
Switch off the split screen. >Turn off split screen<
Adjust the split screen. >Split screen content<
Split screen, map facing north. >Split screen map facing north<
Split screen, current position. >Split screen current position<
Split screen, facing the direction of travel.>Split screen map in direction of travel<
Split screen, perspective.>Split screen perspective<
Split screen, expanded intersection zoom.>Splitscreen Exit ramp view<
Split screen scale...feet.>Split screen scale ... feet< e.g., split screen scale 100 feet
Split screen scale...meters.>Split screen scale ... meters< e.g., split screen scale 100 meters
Split screen scale...kilometers.>Split screen scale ... kilometers< e.g., split screen scale 5 kilometers

Function Command

Split screen scale...miles. >Split screen scale ... miles< e.g., split screen scale 5 miles

Split screen, highlight the traffic situation. »Split screen, Traffic conditions«

Split screen, computer. >Split screen on board info

Split screen, trip computer. >Splitscreen trip computer

Split screen, scale automatically. >Split screen automatic scaling

Destination guidance with intermediate destinations

Function Command

Enter a new destination. »Enter address«

Trip list. >Stored trips

Radio

FM

Function Command

Open a frequency. »Frequency ... megahertz« e.g., 93.5 megahertz or frequency 93.5

Open the radio. »Radio«

Open the FM stations. >F M<

Open the manual search. »Manual«

Select a frequency range. >Select frequency

Open a station. >Select station

AM

Function Command
Open a frequency. >Frequency ... Kilohertz< e.g., frequency 753 or 753 kilohertz
Open the AM stations. >A M<
Open the manual search. >Manual<

Weather Band

Function Command
Open the Weather Band. >Weather band<
Switch on the Weather Band. >Weather band on<
Select a Weather Band station. >Select a weather channel<

Satellite radio

Function Command
Open the satellite radio. >Satellite radio<
Switch on the satellite radio. >Satellite radio on<
Select a satellite radio channel. >Select satellite radio< e.g., satellite radio channel 2

Stored stations

Function Command
Open the stored stations. »Presets«
Choose a stored station. »Select preset«
Select a stored station. »Preset ...< e.g., stored station 2

CD/Multimedia

CD/DVD drive

Function Command

Select a track. >Track ...< e.g., track 5

or

C D track ...< e.g., CD track 5

Play back a CD. >C D on

Select a CD. >Select C D

Select a CD and track. >C D ... track ...< e.g., CD 3 track 5

Open the CD and Multimedia menus. >C D and multimedia

CD and DVD. >C D<

Select a DVD. >D V D ...< e.g. DVD 3

Display the entertainment details on a split screen.

Entertainment details

Music collection

Function Command

Search for music, open a menu. »Music search«

Open the current playback. >Current playback

Open the music collection. »Music collection«

Play back the music collection. »Music collection on«

Play back the most frequently played tracks. >Top fifty

External devices

Function Command

Open the external devices. »External devices«

Open the Bluetooth devices. »Bluetooth«

AUX at front. »AUX front«

Tone

Function Command

Open the tone settings. >Tone

Telephone

Function Command

Dial a phone number. »Dial number«

Opens the Telephone menu. >Telephone

Display the phone book. »Phonebook«

Redialing. >Redial

Display received calls. >Received calls

List of messages. »Messages«

Open the Bluetooth devices. »Bluetooth«

Office

Function Command

Open the Office menu. >Office

Display Office Today. >Current office

Display the contacts. >Contacts

Display the messages. »Messages«

Display the calendar. >Calendar

Display the tasks. >Tasks

Display the reminders. »Reminders«

Contacts

Function Command
Select a name. >Choose name<
My contacts. >My contacts<
Open the contacts. >Contacts<
New contact. >New contact<

BMW Assist or ConnectedDrive

Function Command
Open BMW Assist.>B M W Assist<
Open ConnectedDrive.>Connected Drive<
Open BMW Search. >B M W Online<

Everything from A to Z

Index

A

ABS, Antilock Brake System 98

ACC, Active Cruise Control with Stop & Go 106

Activated-charcoal filter 134

Active Blind Spot Detection 96

Active Cruise Control with Stop & Go, ACC 106

Active seat, front 47

Active seat ventilation, front 47

Active Steering, integral 101

Adaptive brake assistant 98

Adaptive brake lights, refer to Brake force display 97

Adaptive drive 101

Adaptive light control 83

Additional telephone 210

Additives, oil 258

Adjustments, seats/head re- straints 45

Airbags 86

Airbags, indicator/warning light 87

Air circulation, refer to Recirculated-air mode 133

Air distribution, manual 132

Air drying, refer to Cooling function 133

Air pressure, tires 245

Air vents, refer to Ventilation 134

Air volume, automatic climate control 132

Alarm system 40

Alarm, unintentional 41

All around the center console 14

All around the headliner 15

All around the steering wheel 12

ALL program, automatic climate control 133

All-season tires, refer to Winter tires 252

All-wheel-drive 100

Alternating-code hand-held transmitter 137

Alternative oil types 258

AM/FM station 179

Announcement, navigation, refer to Spoken instructions 168

Antifreeze, washer fluid 66

Antilock Brake System, ABS 98

Anti-slip control, refer to DSC 98

Applications 238

Appointments 228

Approved engine oils 258

Apps 238

Apps, video playback 202

Armrest, refer to Center arm-rest 142

Arrival time 77

Ashtray 138

Assist 233

Assistance, Roadside Assistance 268

Assistance when driving off 98

Audio playback 188

Audio playback, Bluetooth 202

AUTO H button, refer to Automatic Hold 62

AUTO intensity 132

Automatic car wash 273

Automatic Cruise Control with Stop & Go 106

Automatic Curb Monitor 52

Automatic deactivation, front passenger airbags 88

Automatic Engine Start/Stop Function 59

Automatic headlamp control 82

Automatic Hold 62

Automatic locking 37

Automatic recirculated-air control 133

Automatic Soft Closing, doors 37

Automatic transmission with Steptronic 66

AUTO program, automatic climate control 132

AUTO program, intensity 132

AUX-IN port 199

Average fuel consumption 76

Average speed 76

Axle loads, weights 281

B

Backrest curvature, refer to Lumbar support 46

Backrest, seats 45

Backrest, width 46

Backup camera 118

Balance 176

Band-Aids, refer to First aid kit 268

Bang & Olufsen 177

Bar for tow-starting/towing 271

Bass 176

Battery replacement, vehicle battery 265

Battery replacement, vehicle remote control 30

Battery, vehicle 265

Belts, safety belts 48

Beverage holder, cu- pholder 142

Blinds, sun protection 42

Bluetooth audio 202

BMW Assist 233

BMW homepage 6

BMW Internet page 6

BMW Maintenance System 260

BMW Search 235

Bottle holder, refer to Cupholder 142

Brake assistant 98

Brake assistant, adaptive 98

Brake discs, breaking in 146

Brake force display 97

Brake lamps, brake force display 97

Brake lamps, bulb replacement 264

Brake lights, adaptive 97

Brake pads, breaking in 146

Braking, notes 147

Breakdown assistance 267, 268

Breaking in 146

Brightness of Control Dis- play 79

Bulb replacement 262

Bulb replacement, front 263

Bulb replacement, rear 264

Bulbs and lamps 262

Button, RES 108

Button, Start/Stop 57

Bypassing, refer to starting aid 269

C

Calendar 228

California Proposition 65 Warning 7

Camera, backup camera 120

Camera, care 276

Camera, Side View 123

Camera, Top View 122

Can holder, refer to Cu- pholder 142

Car battery 265

Car care products 274

Care, displays 276

Care, vehicle 274

Cargo 149

Cargo area lid 38

Cargo area, storage compartments 143

Cargo straps, securing cargo 150

Car key, refer to Remote control 30

Carpet, care 275

Car wash 273

Catalytic converter, refer to Hot exhaust system 147

CBS Condition Based Service 260

CD/DVD 187

CDs, storing 194

Cell phone 210

Center armrest 142

Center console 14

Center speaker 177

Central locking system 33

Central screen, refer to Control Display 16

Central speaker 177

Changes, technical, refer to Safety 6

Changing parts 262

Changing wheels 265

Changing wheels/tires 251

Check Control 70

Checking the oil level 257

Children, seating position 54

Children, transporting safely 54

Child restraint fixing sys- tem 54

Child restraint fixing system LATCH 55

Child restraint fixing systems, mounting 54

Child seat, mounting 54

Child seats 54

Chrome parts, care 275

Cigarette lighter 138

Cleaning, displays 276

Climate control 131

Climate control wind- shield 147

Clock 73

Closing/opening from in-side 37

Closing/opening via door lock 36

Closing/opening with remote control 34

Collision warning 112

Combination switch, refer to Turn signals 63

Combination switch, refer to Wiper system 64

COMFORT+ program, Driving Experience Switch 104

Comfort Access 39

COMFORT program, Driving Experience Switch 104

Computer 76

Concierge service 234

Condensation on windows 132

Condensation under the vehicle 148

Condition Based Service CBS 260

Confirmation signal 35

Contacts 223, 231

Control Display 16

Control Display, settings 78

Controller 16

Control systems, driving stability 98

Convenient opening 34

Coolant 258

Coolant temperature 73

Cooling function 133

Cooling, maximum 133

Cooling system 258

Corrosion on brake discs 148

Cruise control 113

Cruise control, active with Stop & Go 106

Cruising range 73

Cupholder 142

Current fuel consumption 74

Current location, storing 160

Customer Relations 236

D

Damage, tires 251

Damping control, dynamic 101

Data, technical 280

Date 73

Daytime running lights 82

Defrosting, refer to Windows, defrosting 132

Destination distance 76

Destination guidance 166

Destination guidance with intermediate destinations 164

Destination input, navigation 158

Digital clock 73

Digital radio 180

Dimensions 280

Dimmable exterior mirrors 52

Dimmable interior rearview mirror 52

Direction indicator, refer to Turn signals 63

Display, ECO PRO 152

Display in front wind- shield 129

Display lighting, refer to Instrument lighting 84

Displays 69

Displays, cleaning 276

Disposal, coolant 259

Disposal, vehicle battery 266

Distance control, refer to PDC 115

Distance, selecting for ACC 108

Distance to destination 76

Divided screen view, split screen 20

Door lock, refer to Remote control 30

Doors, Automatic Soft Closing 37

Downhill control 100

Drive-off assistant 98

Drive-off assistant, refer to DSC 98

Driving Experience Switch 102

Driving instructions, breaking in 146

Driving notes, general 146

Driving stability control systems 98

Driving tips 146

DSC Dynamic Stability Control 98

DTC driving dynamics 99

DTC Dynamic Traction Control 99

DVD/CD 187

DVD/CD notes 193

DVD changer 191

DVD settings 190

DVDs, storing 194

DVD, video 189

Dynamic Damping Control 101

Dynamic destination guidance 172

Dynamic Drive 101

Dynamic Stability Control DSC 98

Dynamic Traction Control DTC 99

E

ECO PRO 152

EfficientDynamics 153

EfficientDynamics menu, refer to ECO PRO 152

Electronic displays, instrument cluster 70

Electronic Stability Program ESP, refer to DSC 98

Emergency detection, remote control 31

Emergency release, door lock 37

Emergency release, fuel filler flap 242

Emergency Request 267

Emergency service, refer to Roadside Assistance 268

Emergency start function, engine start 31

Emergency unlocking, trunk lid 39

Energy Control 74

Energy recovery 74

Engine, automatic start/stop function 59

Engine, automatic switch-off 59

Engine compartment 255

Engine compartment, working in 255

Engine coolant 258

Engine oil 257

Engine oil, adding 257

Engine oil additives 258

Engine oil change 258

Engine oil filler neck 257

Engine oil temperature 72

Engine oil types, alternative 258

Engine oil types, approved 258

Engine start during malfunction 31

Engine start, refer to Starting the engine 58

Engine start, Starting aid 269

Engine stop 58

Engine temperature 72

Entering/exiting vehicle, assistance, steering wheel 53

Entering a car wash 273

Equalizer 176

Equipment, interior 136

ESP Electronic Stability Program, refer to DSC 98

Exchanging wheels/tires 251

Exhaust system 147

Exterior mirror, automatic dimming feature 52

Exterior mirrors 51

External devices 199

External start 269

External temperature display 73

External temperature warning 73

Eyes for securing cargo 150

F

Fader 176

Failure message, refer to Check Control 70

False alarm, refer to Unintentional alarm 41

Fan, refer to Air volume 132

Fault displays, refer to Check Control 70

Filler neck for engine oil 257

Fine wood, care 275

First aid kit 268

Fitting for towing, refer to Tow fitting 271

Flat tire, changing wheels 265

Flat Tire Monitor FTM 92

Flat tire, Tire Pressure Monitor TPM 89

Flat tire, warning lamp 90, 93

Flooding 147

Floor carpet, care 275

Floor mats, care 275

FM/AM station 179

Fold-out position, windshield wipers 65

Foot brake 147

Front airbags 86

Front fog lamps 84

Front lamps 263

Front passenger airbags, automatic deactivation 88

Front passenger airbags, indicator lamp 88

Front seats 45

FTM Flat Tire Monitor 92

Fuel cap 242

Fuel consumption, current 74

Fuel consumption, refer to Average fuel consumption 76

Fuel filler flap 242

Fuel gauge 72

Fuel quality 244

Fuel, tank capacity 282

Fuse 266

G

Garage door opener, refer to Integrated universal remote control 136

Gas station recommendation 168

Gear change, automatic transmission 67

Gear shift indicator 75

General driving notes 146

Glass sunroof, powered with tilt function 43

Glove compartment 141

Gong, volume equalization 177

GPS navigation, refer to Navigation system 158

Gray display of the map 171

Gross vehicle weight, approved 281

Gross weight, permissible for trailer towing 281

H

Hand brake, refer to Parking brake 61

Hand-held transmitter, alternating code 137

Hazard warning flashers 267

HDC Hill Descent Control 100

HD Radio 180

Head airbags 86

Headlamp control, automatic 82

Headlamp courtesy delay feature 82

Headlamp courtesy delay feature via remote control 35

Headlamp flasher 64

Headlamp glass 263

Headlamps 263

Headlamps, care 274

Headlamp washer system 64

Headliner 15

Head restraints 45

Head restraints, front 49

Head-up Display 129

Head-up Display, care 276

Heavy cargo, stowing 150

Height, seats 45

Height, vehicle 280

High-beam Assistant 83

High beams 64

High beams/low beams, refer to High-beam Assistant 83

Hill Descent Control HDC 100

Hills 148

Hill start assistant, refer to Drive-off assistant 98

Hints 6

Holder for beverages 142

Homepage 6

Hood 255

Horn 12

Hotel function, trunk lid 38

Hot exhaust system 147

House number, entering for navigation 159

Hydroplaning 147

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - H - 1

Ice warning, refer to External temperature warning 73

Icy roads, refer to External temperature warning 73

Identification marks, tires 249

Identification number, refer to Important in the engine compartment 255

iDrive 16

Ignition key, refer to Remote control 30

Ignition off 57

Ignition on 57

Indication of a flat tire 90, 93

Indicator and warning messages 70

Indicator lamps 70

Individual air distribution 132

Individual settings, refer to Personal Profile 31

Inflation pressure, tires 245

Inflation pressure warning FTM, tires 92

Info display, refer to Computer 76

Information on the navigation data 172

Initialization, Integral Active Steering 102

Initializing, Flat Tire Monitor FTM 93

Initializing, Tire Pressure Monitor TPM 90

Instrument cluster 69

Instrument cluster, electronic displays 70

Instrument lighting 84

Integral Active Steering 101

Integrated key 30

Integrated universal remote control 136

Intensity, AUTO program 132

Interactive map 163

Interior equipment 136

Interior lamps 85

Interior lamps via remote control 35

Interior motion sensor 41

Interior rearview mirror 52

Interior rearview mirror, automatic dimming feature 52

Intermediate destinations 165

Internet page 6

Intersection, entering for navigation 159

Interval display, service requirements 74

iPod/iPhone 199

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - H - 2

Jacking points for the vehicle jack 265

Jack, refer to Vehicle jack 265

Joystick, automatic transmission 67

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - H - 3

Key/remote control 30

Keyless Go, refer to Comfort Access 39

Key Memory, refer to Personal Profile 31

Kickdown, automatic transmission 67

Knee airbag 86

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - H - 4

Lamp replacement 262

Lamp replacement, front 263

Lamp replacement, rear 264

Lamps 81

Lamps and bulbs 262

Lane departure warning 94

Lane margin, warning 94

Language on Control Dis- play 79

Lashing eyes, securing cargo 150

LATCH child restraint fixing system 55

Leather, care 274

LED headlamps 263

LEDs, light-emitting diodes 263

Length, vehicle 281

Letters and numbers, entering 21

License plate lamp, bulb replacement 264

Light-alloy wheels, care 275

Light control 83

Light-emitting diodes, LEDs 263

Lighting 81

Lighting, speaker 177

Lighting via remote control 35

Light switch 81

Load 149

Loading 149

Lock, door 36

Locking/unlocking from inside 37

Locking/unlocking via door lock 36

Locking/unlocking with remote control 34

Locking, automatic 37

Locking, central 33

Locking via trunk lid 38

Low beams 81

Low beams, automatic, refer to High-beam Assistant 83

Lower back support 46

Lumbar support 46

M

Maintenance 260

Maintenance requirements 260

Maintenance, service requirements 74

Maintenance system, BMW 260

Malfunction displays, refer to Check Control 70

Manual air distribution 132

Manual air volume 132

Manual brake, refer to Parking brake 61

Manual mode, transmission 68

Manual operation, backup camera 118

Manual operation, door lock 37

Manual operation, exterior mirrors 52

Manual operation, fuel filler flap 242

Manual operation, Park Distance Control PDC 116

Manual operation, Side View 122

Manual operation, Top View 121

Manual transmission 66

Map, destination entry 163

Map in split screen 170

Map view 168

Marking on approved tires 252

Marking, run-flat tires 253

Massage seat, front 47

Master key, refer to Remote control 30

Maximum cooling 133

Maximum speed, winter tires 252

Measure, units of 79

Medical kit 268

Memory for seat, mirrors, steering wheel 50

Menu, EfficientDynamics 153

Menu in instrument cluster 75

Menus, operating, iDrive 16

Menus, refer to iDrive operating concept 17

Message list, traffic bulletins 170

Messages 225

Messages, refer to Check Control 70

Microfilter 134

Minimum tread, tires 251

Mirror 51

Mirror memory 50

Mobile communication devices in the vehicle 147

Mobile phone 210

Mode, ECO PRO 152

Modifications, technical, refer to Safety 6

Moisture in headlamp 263

Monitor, refer to Control Display 16

Mounting of child restraint fixing systems 54

MP3 player 199

Multifunction steering wheel, buttons 12

Multimedia 187

Music collection 194

Music search 195

Music, storing 194

N

Navigation 158

Navigation data 172

Neck restraints, front, refer to Head restraints 49

New wheels and tires 251

Night Vision with pedestrian detection 126

Notes 229

Nylon rope for tow-starting/towing 271

0

OBD Onboard Diagnostics 261

Obstacle marking, backup camera 119

Odometer 73

Office 222

Oil 257

Oil, adding 257

Oil additives 258

Oil change 258

Oil change interval, service requirements 74

Oil filler neck 257

Oil level check 257

Oil types, alternative 258

Oil types, approved 258

Old batteries, disposal 266

Onboard Diagnostics OBD 261

Onboard monitor, refer to Control Display 16

Onboard vehicle tool kit 262

Opening/closing from inside 37

Opening/closing via door lock 36

Opening/closing with remote control 34

Operating concept, iDrive 16

Optional equipment, standard equipment 6

Outside air, refer to Automatic recirculated-air control 133

Overheating of engine, refer to Coolant temperature 73

P

Paint, vehicle 274

Panic mode 35

Parallel parking assistant 123

Park Distance Control PDC 115

Parked-car ventilation 134

Parked vehicle, condensation 148

Parking aid, refer to PDC 115

Parking assistant 123

Parking brake 61

Parking lamps 81

Parking with Auto Hold 62

Passenger side mirror, tilting downward 52

Pathway lines, backup camera 118

PDC Park Distance Control 115

Pedestrian detection, refer to Night Vision 126

People detection, refer to Night Vision 126

Permissible axle load 281

Personal information 222

Personal Profile 31

Phone 210

Pinch protection system, glass sunroof 43

Pinch protection system, windows 42

Plastic, care 275

Plugin 238

Position, storing 160

Postal code, entering in navigation 159

Power failure 266

Power sunroof, glass 43

Power windows 41

Pressure, tire air pressure 245

Pressure warning FTM, tires 92

Profile, refer to Personal Profile 31

Programmable memory buttons, iDrive 20

Protective function, glass sun-roof 43

Protective function, windows 42

Push-and-turn switch, refer to Controller 16

R

Radiator fluid 258

Radio 179

Radio-operated key, refer to Remote control 30

Radio ready state 58

Rain sensor 65

Random 188

Random playback 188

RDS 180

Reading out loud 230

Rear axle steering 101

Rear lamps 264

Rearview mirror 51

Rear window defroster 133

Recirculated-air mode 133

Recommended tire brands 252

Refueling 242

Remaining range 73

Reminders 229

Remote control/key 30

Remote control, malfunction 36

Remote control, universal 136

Replacement fuse 266

Replacing parts 262

Replacing wheels/tires 251

Reporting safety defects 8

RES button 108

Reserve warning, refer to Range 73

Resetting, Tire Pressure Monitor TPM 90

Residual heat, automatic climate control 133

Retaining straps, securing cargo 150

Retreaded tires 252

Reversing lamp, bulb replacement 264

Roadside Assistance 234

Roadside parking lamps 82

Roller sunblinds 42

Roll stabilization, refer to Adaptive Drive 101

Roll stabilization, refer to Dynamic Drive 101

Rope for tow-starting/tow-ing 271

Route 167

Route criteria, route 166

Route, displaying 167

Routes, avoiding 166

Route section, bypassing 167

RSC Runflat System Component, refer to Run-flat tires 253

Rubber components, care 275

Run-flat tires 253

S

Safe braking 147

Safety 6

Safety belt reminder 49

Safety belts 48

Safety belts, care 275

Safety systems, airbags 86

Satellite radio 181

Saving fuel 151

Scale, changing during navigation 169

Screen, refer to Control Display 16

Screwdriver 262

Screw thread for tow fitting 272

Search, refer to BMW Search 235

Seat belts, refer to Safety belts 48

Seat heating, front 47

Seating position for children 54

Seat, mirror, and steering wheel memory 50

Seats 45

Seat ventilation, front 47

Selection list in instrument cluster 75

Selector lever, automatic transmission 67

Sensors, care 276

Service and warranty 7

Service requirements, Condition Based Service CBS 260

Service requirements, display 74

Service, Roadside Assistance 268

Settings on Control Dis- play 78

Settings, storing for seat, mirrors, steering wheel 50

Shifting, automatic transmission 66

Shifting, manual transmission 66

Shift paddles on steering wheel 68

Short commands 283

Shoulder support 47

Side airbags 86

Side View 122

Signaling, horn 12

Signals when unlocking 35

Sitting safely 45

Size 280

Ski bag 139

Smallest turning circle 281

Smoker's package 138

Snap-in adapter, mobile phone 220

Snow chains 253

Socket 138

Socket, OBD Onboard Diagnostics 261

Software applications, iPhone 238

Software update 205

Spare fuse 266

Speaker lighting 177

Special destinations, navigation 161

Specified engine oil types 258

Speed, average 76

Speed limit, setting 77

Speed Volume, volume equalization 177

Split screen 20

Split screen map settings 170

Spoken instructions, navigation 168

SPORT+ program, Dynamic Driving Control 103

Sport automatic transmission 68

SPORT program, Dynamic Driving Control 103

Sport program, transmission 68

Stability control systems 98

Start/stop, automatic function 59

Start/Stop button 57

Start function during malfunction 31

Starting aid 269

Starting the engine 58

State/province, selecting for navigation 158

Stations, stored 185

Station, storing 179

Status display, tires 89

Status information, iDrive 19

Status of Owner's Manual 6

Steering, Integral Active Steering 101

Steering wheel, adjusting 53

Steering wheel heating 53

Steering wheel memory 50

Steptronic, automatic transmission 66

Stopping the engine 58

Storage compartments 141

Storage compartments, locations 141

Storage, tires 253

Storing the vehicle 276

Street, entering for navigation 159

Summer tires, tread 251

Supplementary text mes- sage 72

Surround View 118

Switch-on times, parked-car ventilation 135

Switch, refer to Cockpit 12

Symbols 6

T

Tachometer 72

Tail and brake lamps 264

Tailgate 38

Tailgate via remote control 35

Tail lamps 264

Tail lamps, bulb replacement 264

Tasks 228

Technical changes, refer to Safety 6

Technical data 280

TeleService 234

Temperature, automatic climate control 132

Temperature display, external temperature 73

Temperature, engine oil 72

Tempomat, refer to Active Cruise Control 106

Terminal, starting aid 269

Text messages 225

Text message, supplementary 72

Theft alarm system, refer to Alarm system 40

Theft protection, refer to Central locking system 33

Thermal camera, refer to Night Vision 126

Thigh support 46

Tilt alarm sensor 41

Tilt glass roof 43

Tilt, seats 45

Time of arrival 77

Tire damage 251

Tire identification marks 249

Tire inflation pressure 245

Tire inflation pressure monitor, refer to FTM 92

Tire Pressure Monitor TPM 89

Tires, changing 251

Tires, everything on wheels and tires 245

Tires, run-flat tires 253

Tire tread 251

Toll roads, route 166

Tone 176

Tools 262

Top View 120

Total vehicle weight 281

Tow fitting 271

Towing 270

Town/city, navigation 159

Tow-starting 270

Tow truck 270

TPM Tire Pressure Monitor 89

Traction control 99

TRACTION program, Dynamic Driving Control 103

Traffic bulletins, navigation 170

Transmission, automatic 66

Transmission, manual 66

Transporting children safely 54

Tread, tires 251

Treble, tone 176

Trip computer 77

Triple turn signal activation 63

Trip odometer 73

Truck for tow-starting/towing 270

Trunk lid 38

Trunk lid, emergency unlocking 39

Trunk lid, hotel function 38

Trunk lid via remote control 35

Turning circle 281

Turning circle lines, backup camera 119

Turn signals, front, bulb replacement 263

Turn signals, operation 63

Turn signals, rear, bulb replacement 264

U

Unintentional alarm 41

Units of measure 79

Universal remote control 136

Unlock button, automatic transmission 67

Unlocking/locking from inside 37

Unlocking/locking via door lock 36

Unlocking/locking with remote control 34

Updates made after the editorial deadline 6

Updating software 205

Upholstery care 275

USB audio interface 199

USB interface 141

V

Variable steering, Integral Active Steering 101

Vehicle battery 265

Vehicle battery, replacing 265

Vehicle, breaking in 146

Vehicle care 274

Vehicle equipment 6

Vehicle identification number, refer to Identification number in the engine compartment 255

Vehicle jack 265

Vehicle paint 274

Vehicle storage 276

Vehicle wash 273

Ventilation 134

Ventilation, refer to Parked-car ventilation 134

Version of the navigation data 172

Video playback 189

Video playback, iPhone 202

Video playback, snap-in adapter 202

Voice activation, mobile phone 218

Voice activation, short commands 283

Voice activation system 22

Volume, setting 176

W

Warning lamps 70

Warning messages, refer to Check Control 70

Warning triangle 268

Washer fluid 66

Washer fluid reservoir, capacity 282

Washer nozzles, wind-shield 65

Washer system 64

Washing, vehicle 273

Water on roads 147

Weather Band 181

Weights 281

Welcome lamps 81

Wheel base, vehicle 281

Wheels, changing 251

Wheels, everything on wheels and tires 245

Wheels, Flat Tire Monitor FTM 92

Wheels, Tire Pressure Monitor TPM 89

Width, vehicle 280

Window defroster, rear 133

Windows, powered 41

Windshield, climate control 147

Windshield washer fluid 66

Windshield washer nozzles 65

Windshield washer system 64

Windshield wiper 64

Windshield wipers, fold-out position 65

Winter storage, care 276

Winter tires, suitable tires 252

Winter tires, tread 251

Wiper blades, replacing 262

Wiper fluid 66

Wiper system 64

Wood, care 275

Word match concept, navigation 21

Wrench 262

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - W - 1

xDrive 100

Xenon headlamps, bulb replacement 263

More about BMW

bmwusa.com

BMW 650i xDrive Coupe (2012) - W - 2

The Ultimate Driving Machine

Table of contents Click a title to access it
Manual assistant
Powered by Anthropic
Waiting for your message
Product information

Brand : BMW

Model : 650i xDrive Coupe (2012)

Category : Car